Selected quad for the lemma: end_n

Word A Word B Word C Word D Occurrence Frequency Band MI MI Band Prominent
end_n according_a time_n world_n 1,640 5 4.3978 4 true
View all documents for the selected quad

Text snippets containing the quad

ID Title Author Corrected Date of Publication (TCP Date of Publication) STC Words Pages
A16853 A revelation of the Apocalyps, that is, the Apocalyps of S. Iohn illustrated vvith an analysis & scolions where the sense is opened by the scripture, & the events of things foretold, shewed by histories. Hereunto is prefixed a generall view: and at the end of the 17. chapter, is inserted a refutation of R. Bellarmine touching Antichrist, in his 3. book of the B. of Rome. By Thomas Brightman.; Apocalypsis Apocalypseos. English Brightman, Thomas, 1562-1607. 1611 (1611) STC 3754; ESTC S106469 722,529 728

There are 28 snippets containing the selected quad. | View original text

sort_n john_n be_v here_o instruct_v of_o the_o elder_n nevertheless_o it_o shall_v appear_v from_o those_o thing_n which_o follow_v that_o the_o elder_n demand_v not_o of_o the_o general_a innumerable_a multitude_n but_o of_o one_o certain_a kind_n contain_v in_o that_o great_a company_n who_o yet_o all_o be_v in_o one_o apparel_n and_o rejoice_v in_o one_o name_n because_o they_o shall_v cleave_v one_o to_o another_o both_o in_o consent_n to_o the_o same_o truth_n and_o also_o by_o a_o continual_a join_v together_o of_o the_o time_n who_o also_o shall_v at_o length_n be_v partaker_n of_o the_o same_o glory_n 14_o thou_o know_v as_o though_o he_o shall_v say_v i_o know_v not_o thou_o know_v wherefore_o this_o company_n be_v not_o the_o same_o which_o he_o see_v lie_v under_o the_o altar_n chap._n 6.9_o etc._n etc._n for_o in_o that_o place_n he_o understand_v that_o they_o be_v kill_v for_o the_o word_n of_o god_n neither_o have_v he_o any_o need_n to_o be_v teach_v again_o but_o as_o it_o be_v a_o new_a troop_n of_o the_o godly_a who_o by_o his_o ignorance_n he_o declare_v shall_v be_v unknown_a to_o the_o world_n suspect_v nothing_o less_o ¶_o these_o be_v they_o which_o come_v out_o of_o great_a tribulation_n the_o elder_n do_v ask_v two_o thing_n who_o be_v these_o and_o whence_o come_v they_o john_n be_v ignorant_a of_o both_o of_o they_o the_o elder_a therefore_o teach_v he_o but_o answer_v only_o to_o one_o that_o be_v to_o say_v whence_o they_o come_v which_o yet_o also_o shall_v disclose_v the_o man_n themselves_o it_o be_v indeed_o a_o great_a affliction_n which_o the_o church_n suffer_v under_o antichrist_n that_o whole_a time_n wherein_o the_o faithful_a be_v know_v only_o by_o the_o mark_n print_v on_o they_o and_o not_o that_o only_a but_o also_o some_o age_n after_o as_o it_o shall_v be_v make_v manifest_a afterward_o yet_o i_o do_v not_o think_v that_o this_o be_v mean_v in_o this_o place_n but_o that_o it_o be_v call_v great_a for_o excellency_n sake_n for_o the_o great_a of_o all_o that_o ever_o be_v since_o the_o world_n be_v make_v which_o sure_o moses_n will_v tell_v we_o of_o in_o his_o song_n in_o these_o word_n for_o fire_n be_v kindle_v in_o my_o wrath_n which_o shall_v burn_v even_o unto_o the_o bottom_n of_o the_o grave_n and_o shall_v consume_v the_o earth_n and_o her_o increase_n and_o set_v on_o fire_n the_o foundation_n of_o the_o mountain_n upon_o the_o consume_v for_o hunger_n and_o waste_v with_o scab_n and_o bitter_a pestilence_n i_o will_v send_v also_o the_o tooth_n of_o beast_n with_o the_o venom_n of_o serpent_n of_o the_o earth_n the_o sword_n shall_v kill_v without_o and_o in_o the_o chamber_n fear_v both_o the_o young_a man_n and_o the_o young_a woman_n the_o suckling_n with_o the_o gray_a head_a deut._n 32.22_o moses_n sing_v that_o these_o evil_n shall_v come_v upon_o the_o jew_n for_o their_o fall_v away_o from_o god_n which_o albeit_o they_o strike_v a_o certain_a horror_n into_o man_n even_o by_o the_o word_n rehearse_v yet_o they_o scarce_o touch_v the_o least_o part_n of_o those_o calamity_n wherewith_o the_o most_o wretched_a nation_n be_v waste_v by_o the_o space_n of_o a_o thou_o sand_n six_o hundred_o year_n even_o to_o this_o very_a day_n which_o time_n i_o doubt_v not_o but_o moses_n have_v show_v in_o those_o word_n that_o i_o may_v put_v you_o in_o mind_n of_o this_o by_o the_o way_n who_o can_v number_v by_o count_v how_o great_a evil_n those_o ancient_a jew_n who_o kill_v the_o lord_n of_o life_n and_o defile_v their_o hand_n with_o the_o blood_n of_o the_o apostle_n suffer_v in_o the_o destruction_n of_o the_o city_n no_o history_n show_v that_o there_o be_v ever_o make_v so_o horrible_a a_o slaughter_n the_o enemy_n himself_o refrain_v not_o from_o tear_n acknowledge_v the_o strange_a murder_n beyond_o the_o cruelty_n of_o any_o war_n you_o may_v think_v that_o the_o whole_a nation_n be_v here_o destroy_v utter_o especial_o when_o they_o who_o be_v leave_v in_o that_o utter_a ruin_n be_v sell_v to_o be_v slave_n be_v throw_v to_o the_o wild_a beast_n be_v make_v mock_v stock_n in_o the_o theater_n final_o be_v not_o exempt_v from_o death_n but_o reserve_v unto_o torment_n indeed_o a_o few_o year_n after_o it_o seem_v to_o have_v be_v revive_v but_o it_o be_v to_o endure_v new_a calamity_n like_v as_o in_o the_o comedy_n the_o heart_n of_o prometheus_n be_v eat_v be_v restore_v often_o time_n for_o hadrian_n kill_v again_o this_o people_n most_o miserable_o forbid_v they_o their_o native_a soil_n and_o disperse_v they_o into_o all_o quarter_n of_o the_o world_n since_o that_o time_n they_o be_v disperse_v vacabonde_n banish_v from_o their_o own_o country_n &_o land_n wander_v through_o the_o whole_a world_n without_o governor_n without_o god_n for_o a_o king_n yea_o that_o i_o may_v use_v the_o word_n of_o terlullian_n in_o his_o apologet._n to_o who_o it_o be_v not_o so_o much_o permit_v as_o that_o according_a to_o the_o right_n of_o stranger_n they_o may_v salute_v their_o father_n land_n with_o their_o foot_n there_o be_v never_o no_o calamity_n of_o any_o people_n either_o for_o the_o kind_n of_o punishment_n so_o grievous_a or_o for_o the_o length_n of_o time_n of_o such_o continuance_n there_o have_v not_o be_v any_o spectacle_n so_o clear_a of_o god_n be_v offend_v not_o any_o so_o fearful_a exemple_n of_o his_o eternal_a wrath_n neither_o yet_o shall_v there_o belesse_a trouble_n a_o little_a before_o that_o time_n when_o god_n shall_v give_v a_o end_n to_o this_o so_o long_a misery_n at_o that_o time_n say_v daniel_n when_o there_o shall_v be_v a_o time_n of_o trouble_n such_o as_o have_v not_o be_v since_o it_o be_v anation_n even_o unto_o that_o time_n which_o that_o it_o be_v to_o be_v understand_v of_o the_o last_o sharp_a assault_n before_o the_o full_a restore_n of_o the_o nation_n we_o shall_v sometime_o show_v more_o clear_o if_o god_n will_n therefore_o whether_o we_o respect_v the_o present_a cast_n of_o of_o this_o people_n or_o that_o future_a calamity_n at_o their_o receive_n again_o into_o grace_n this_o great_a affliction_n be_v proper_a to_o the_o jew_n who_o together_o with_o the_o remnant_n of_o the_o gentile_n be_v revive_v after_o the_o tyranny_n of_o antichrist_n and_o with_o they_o which_o shall_v then_o first_o open_v their_o eye_n to_o see_v the_o truth_n shall_v make_v that_o great_a company_n which_o no_o man_n can_v number_v ver_fw-la 9_o these_o thing_n be_v confirm_v from_o that_o happiness_n which_o follow_v in_o the_o next_o word_n which_o pertain_v to_o this_o present_a life_n on_o earth_n &_o not_o to_o that_o future_a in_o the_o heaven_n the_o sound_a fruition_n whereof_o shall_v not_o come_v before_o that_o there_o be_v make_v one_o sheepfolde_a the_o elect_a jew_n be_v choose_v into_o one_o christian_a people_n as_o we_o shall_v show_v at_o chap._n 21.22_o from_o which_o it_o be_v now_o manifest_a see_v that_o this_o indefinite_a number_n be_v make_v partly_o of_o the_o gentile_n partly_o of_o the_o jew_n who_o calling_n ought_v to_o be_v expect_v a_o long_a time_n after_o that_o seal_n which_o be_v speak_v of_o before_o that_o those_o definite_a and_o seal_a one_o be_v not_o jew_n furthermore_o sound_a peace_n and_o all_o perfect_a happiness_n shall_v follow_v the_o call_n of_o the_o jew_n as_o in_o the_o next_o word_n it_o be_v declare_v brief_o but_o more_o large_o at_o chap._n 21._o and_o 22._o but_o when_o the_o seal_n be_v finish_v there_o remain_v yet_o much_o of_o that_o great_a affliction_n all_o which_o shall_v more_o appear_v in_o the_o thing_n that_o follow_v ¶_o and_o have_v wash_v their_o long_a robe_n at_o length_n be_v convert_v by_o faith_n unto_o christ_n and_o clothe_v with_o the_o imputation_n of_o his_o only_a righteousness_n &_o holiness_n 15_o therefore_o they_o be_v before_o the_o throne_n as_o before_o in_o ver_fw-la 9_o choose_v into_o the_o church_n and_o gather_v into_o the_o assembly_n of_o the_o faithful_a ¶_o day_n and_o night_n without_o cease_v for_o then_o the_o fall_n away_o shall_v be_v end_v and_o they_o shall_v cleave_v constant_o to_o god_n even_o to_o the_o last_o end_n ¶_o in_o his_o temple_n yet_o there_o shall_v be_v no_o temple_n there_o as_o chap._n 21.22_o but_o in_o that_o place_n be_v understand_v the_o abolish_n of_o the_o ceremony_n which_o they_o shall_v regard_v no_o more_o for_o the_o worship_v of_o god_n thereby_o here_o be_v a_o pilgrimage_n yet_o on_o earth_n from_o the_o lord_n where_o we_o have_v need_n of_o the_o come_n between_o of_o outward_a mean_n for_o to_o worship_v he_o of_o which_o there_o shall_v be_v no_o use_n in_o the_o heaven_n ¶_o they_o shall_v hunger_n no_o more_o they_o shall_v want_v nothing_o neither_o shall_v
he_o may_v not_o publish_v abroad_o it_o be_v not_o sure_o to_o be_v think_v especial_o see_v christ_n to_o this_o end_n receive_v this_o prophecy_n that_o he_o may_v show_v it_o to_o his_o servant_n as_o before_o in_o chap._n 1.1_o where_o to_o his_o servant_n say_v he_o not_o to_o any_o one_o alone_a but_o for_o the_o common_a good_a of_o the_o whole_a church_n wherefore_o these_o word_n seem_v thus_o to_o be_v understand_v as_o though_o he_o shall_v say_v bring_v not_o these_o voice_n of_o the_o thunder_n into_o this_o place_n but_o reserve_v they_o to_o a_o other_o more_o proper_a and_o fit_a which_o judgement_n certain_a print_v copy_n do_v favour_n which_o read_v &_o hereafter_o thou_o write_v or_o peradventure_o shall_v write_v but_o although_o 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d may_v easy_o be_v change_v into_o 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d the_o first_o vowel_n be_v alter_v and_o the_o last_o syllable_n take_v away_o yet_o i_o scarce_o think_v that_o reading_n quite_o opposite_a one_o to_o another_o be_v find_v at_o any_o time_n wherefore_o when_o it_o be_v hear_v to_o jug_n what_o sense_n to_o take_v that_o interpretation_n please_v i_o most_o of_o all_o which_o alike_o agree_v to_o both_o to_o wit_n according_a to_o that_o meaning_n which_o we_o bring_v even_o now_o unless_o some_o will_v rather_o have_v that_o these_o word_n and_o shall_v write_v hereafter_o be_v refer_v to_o the_o next_o vision_n which_o follow_v but_o that_o the_o voice_n of_o the_o thunder_n shall_v be_v bury_v in_o silence_n for_o ever_o but_o the_o former_a interpretation_n be_v more_o sure_a that_o the_o revelation_n be_v give_v for_o a_o common_a solace_n and_o that_o therefore_o those_o thing_n shall_v be_v disclose_v afterward_o in_o their_o place_n which_o now_o be_v command_v to_o be_v keep_v close_o albeit_o i_o deny_v not_o that_o some_o thing_n may_v be_v communicate_v to_o the_o saint_n apart_o as_o to_o paul_n who_o hear_v thing_n that_o can_v not_o be_v utter_v 2_o cor._n 12.4_o but_o the_o drift_n of_o the_o prophecy_n be_v to_o be_v regard_v more_o over_o to_o what_o purpose_n shall_v it_o be_v that_o those_o thing_n shall_v be_v overwhelm_v with_o a_o eternal_a silence_n if_o at_o length_n that_o be_v to_o be_v bring_v to_o pass_v which_o the_o thunder_n speak_v therefore_o let_v they_o be_v seal_v for_o this_o time_n in_o which_o they_o be_v hide_v from_o the_o world_n as_o it_o come_v to_o pass_v for_o the_o most_o part_n in_o their_o first_o beginning_n afterward_o let_v they_o be_v write_v in_o the_o place_n wherein_o they_o shall_v obtain_v their_o end_n when_o the_o thing_n shall_v become_v most_o plain_a by_o the_o event_n that_o be_v to_o say_v be_v perfect_v they_o shall_v be_v understand_v but_o they_o shall_v not_o be_v know_v as_o long_o as_o thy_o be_v to_o be_v finish_v 5_o and_o the_o angel_n which_o i_o see_v stand_v &c._n &c._n lift_v up_o his_o hand_n hitherto_o of_o the_o thing_n that_o be_v to_o be_v seal_v now_o it_o follow_v touch_v the_o finish_n of_o the_o mystery_n which_o first_o be_v of_o thing_n to_o be_v communicate_v it_o be_v confirm_v by_o a_o oath_n that_o it_o shall_v be_v short_o for_o in_o that_o he_o lift_v up_o the_o hand_n it_o be_v do_v from_o the_o old_a solemn_a manner_n of_o swearer_n from_o whence_o to_o lift_v up_o the_o hand_n be_v often_o time_n take_v for_o to_o swear_v gen._n 14.22_o numb_a 14_o 30._o ezech._n 20.5_o 6_o and_o he_o swear_v by_o he_o which_o live_v 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d the_o grecian_n speak_v by_o the_o four_o case_n 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d but_o john_n after_o the_o manner_n of_o the_o hebeewes_n swear_v unto_o i_o in_o the_o lord_n 1_o sam._n 24.21_o but_o he_o describe_v god_n by_o his_o power_n which_o most_o of_o all_o appear_v in_o create_v thing_n whereby_o he_o bring_v into_o mind_n that_o he_o be_v no_o less_o able_a to_o put_v a_o end_n to_o thing_n then_o to_o give_v a_o beginning_n and_o that_o therefore_o it_o be_v not_o to_o be_v doubt_v but_o that_o he_o will_v straightway_o perform_v the_o future_a work_n who_o in_o the_o beginning_n make_v all_o thing_n of_o nothing_o ¶_o that_o time_n shall_v be_v no_o more_o so_o i_o translate_v the_o word_n 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d which_o some_o time_n signifi_v continuance_n of_o time_n as_o 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d time_n day_n delay_n shall_v mollify_v &_o mitigate_v whence_o 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d to_o stay_v tarry_v defer_v be_v the_o same_o that_o 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d be_v in_o luke_n 12.45_o heb._n 10.37_o aretas_n and_o the_o common_a sort_n of_o interpreter_n will_v have_v it_o to_o be_v understand_v of_o the_o abolish_n of_o time_n after_o the_o end_n of_o the_o world_n as_o if_o the_o sun_n and_o the_o rest_n of_o the_o star_n shall_v stay_v their_o course_n and_o no_o long_o finish_v their_o yearly_a round_a course_n but_o these_o thing_n be_v to_o be_v refer_v rather_o to_o the_o shortness_n of_o time_n then_o unto_o the_o consummation_n of_o the_o world_n for_o otherwise_o there_o shall_v be_v no_o special_a comfort_n but_o that_o which_o have_v be_v no_o less_o common_a to_o all_o age_n for_o even_o from_o the_o very_a beginning_n of_o the_o world_n it_o may_v well_o have_v be_v say_v that_o there_o shall_v be_v no_o time_n after_o the_o end_n of_o the_o world_n to_o what_o purpose_n also_o shall_v he_o sever_v the_o part_n which_o be_v not_o disjoin_v by_o the_o conjunction_n but_o in_o the_o begin_n of_o the_o next_o verse_n time_n shal●_n be_v no_o more_o but_o the_o mystery_n shall_v be_v finish_v time_n after_o the_o consummation_n differ_v nothing_o from_o the_o consummation_n therefore_o this_o be_v the_o meaning_n of_o the_o word_n that_o there_o remain_v a_o very_a little_a time_n unto_o the_o finish_n of_o the_o mystery_n which_o be_v the_o sum_n of_o the_o preach_n of_o the_o first_o angel_n chap._n 14.7_o for_o say_v he_o the_o hour_n of_o his_o judgement_n be_v come_v in_o which_o be_v perform_v that_o which_o be_v signify_v here_o by_o the_o angel_n swear_v for_o they_o belong_v to_o the_o same_o time_n and_o the_o argument_n of_o the_o preach_n be_v one_o and_o the_o same_o for_o though_o they_o hold_v their_o peace_n the_o very_a restore_n of_o the_o truth_n will_v cry_v out_o that_o the_o end_n draw_v near_o 7_o but_o in_o the_o day_n of_o the_o voice_n of_o the_o seven_o angel_n he_o describe_v the_o time_n of_o the_o finish_n but_o that_o which_o follow_v when_o it_o shall_v come_v to_o pass_v that_o he_o shall_v blow_v the_o trumpet_n the_o common_a translation_n have_v it_o not_o right_a when_o the_o trumpet_n shall_v begin_v to_o blow_v which_o thing_n have_v deceive_v some_o expositor_n so_o that_o they_o though_o that_o this_o finish_n of_o the_o mystery_n shall_v be_v refer_v unto_o the_o first_o sound_n of_o the_o trumpet_n of_o the_o seven_o angel_n but_o it_o shall_v appear_v more_o clear_o than_o the_o light_n after_o in_o this_o book_n that_o this_o end_n be_v not_o to_o be_v expect_v at_o the_o begin_n of_o the_o sound_n of_o the_o trumpet_n but_o some_o long_a time_n after_o there_o shall_v be_v no_o small_a distance_n of_o time_n between_o the_o vial_n the_o first_o whereof_o shall_v not_o be_v pour_v out_o before_o that_o the_o seven_o trumpet_n shall_v blow_v as_o after_o shall_v be_v see_v more_o clear_o what_o then_o promise_v the_o angel_n touch_v the_o take_n away_o of_o time_n not_o that_o the_o thing_n shall_v be_v do_v in_o that_o moment_n but_o because_o the_o space_n to_o come_v be_v nothing_o to_o that_o which_o be_v past_a ¶_o the_o mystery_n of_o god_n shalb_v finish_v 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d shall_v be_v finish_v so_o have_v the_o common_a translation_n the_o complutent_n edition_n have_v 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d by_o repeat_v 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d that_o it_o be_v finish_v see_v theod._n bez._n all_o expositor_n which_o i_o have_v see_v do_v understande_v these_o thing_n of_o the_o last_o come_n of_o christ_n to_o judgement_n which_o shall_v be_v in_o the_o day_n of_o this_o seven_o angel_n yet_o if_o the_o drift_n of_o this_o book_n be_v consider_v &_o every_o point_n of_o the_o last_o time_n be_v diligent_o examine_v it_o shall_v easy_o appear_v unless_o i_o be_v deceive_v that_o there_o be_v a_o other_o meaning_n of_o these_o word_n the_o whole_a prophecy_n tend_v to_o that_o point_n to_o show_v what_o shall_v be_v the_o race_n of_o the_o church_n as_o long_o as_o she_o must_v be_v as_o a_o stranger_n on_o earth_n which_o have_v be_v show_v clear_o concern_v the_o church_n of_o the_o gentile_n some_o mention_n be_v to_o be_v make_v of_o the_o restore_n
sin_n they_o must_v needs_o find_v more_o stubborn_a and_o spiteful_a the_o condition_n of_o that_o time_n can_v not_o be_v show_v more_o brief_o and_o manifest_o i_o therefore_o take_v the_o little_a book_n although_o john_n hear_v how_o great_a trouble_n this_o meat_n will_v bring_v he_o yet_o obey_v he_o willing_o the_o angel_n and_o eat_v up_o the_o book_n as_o he_o be_v command_v there_o be_v a_o better_a love_n in_o he_o to_o god_n word_n than_o any_o regard_n of_o loathsomeness_n or_o wring_v in_o the_o belly_n from_o bitterness_n such_o excellent_a fortitude_n be_v in_o those_o learned_a man_n of_o that_o age_n before_o speak_v of_o it_o can_v not_o be_v but_o that_o they_o know_v certain_o how_o great_a trouble_n they_o shall_v procure_v to_o themselves_o by_o avouch_v the_o truth_n yet_o nevertheless_o they_o labour_v valiant_o set_v more_o by_o the_o sweetness_n which_o they_o receive_v from_o the_o joy_n of_o the_o spirit_n they_o by_o all_o the_o bitterness_n of_o peril_n by_o who_o example_n all_o minister_n of_o the_o word_n must_v go_v on_o bold_o neither_o be_v the_o office_n to_o be_v forsake_v because_o of_o the_o trouble_n it_o be_v no_o new_a thing_n for_o that_o to_o be_v find_v bitter_a by_o experience_n which_o be_v taste_v a_o little_a at_o the_o tongue_n end_n seem_v sweet_a therefore_o let_v every_o true_a prophet_n have_v this_o lesson_n well_o meditate_a lest_o peradventure_o light_v upon_o unexpected_a evil_n he_o be_v overcome_v at_o length_n through_o infirmity_n 11_o thou_o must_v prophecy_n again_o now_o in_o few_o word_n he_o show_v to_o what_o end_n the_o former_a sign_n be_v use_v that_o it_o may_v be_v understand_v that_o prophecy_n be_v to_o be_v restore_v again_o to_o the_o church_n in_o those_o time_n the_o preparation_n whereunto_o be_v the_o receive_n and_o eat_v up_o of_o the_o book_n to_o wit_n a_o burn_a desire_n of_o learning_n which_o give_v hope_n of_o a_o more_o perfect_a light_n to_o appear_v daily_a but_o their_o opinion_n be_v foolish_a who_o will_v from_o these_o word_n have_v john_n to_o be_v expect_v about_o the_o end_n of_o the_o world_n with_o enoch_n &_o elias_n these_o thing_n belong_v not_o to_o the_o last_o time_n but_o to_o the_o sixth_o trumpet_n which_o we_o will_v declare_v manifest_o hereafter_o to_o be_v past_a and_o john_n be_v set_v forth_o only_o as_o a_o type_n not_o describe_v by_o any_o office_n which_o in_o his_o own_o person_n he_o shall_v bear_v in_o the_o last_o time_n chap._n 11._o and_o a_o reed_n be_v give_v i_o like_a unto_o a_o road_n and_o the_o angel_n stand_v by_o say_v rise_v and_o mete_v the_o temple_n of_o god_n and_o the_o altar_n and_o they_o that_o worship_n therein_o 2_o but_o the_o court_n which_o be_v without_o the_o temple_n shut_v out_o meet_v it_o not_o for_o it_o be_v give_v to_o the_o gentile_n &_o they_o shall_v tread_v under_o foot_n the_o holy_a city_n two_o and_o forty_o month_n 3_o but_o i_o will_v give_v to_o those_o my_o two_o witness_n and_o they_o shall_v prophesy_v a_o thousand_o two_o hundred_o and_o threescore_o day_n clothe_v in_o sackcloth_n 4_o these_o be_v two_o olive_n tree_n and_o two_o candlestick_n stand_v before_o the_o god_n of_o the_o earth_n 5_o and_o if_o any_o man_n will_v hurt_v they_o fire_n proceed_v out_o of_o their_o mouth_n which_o shall_v devour_v their_o enemy_n for_o if_o any_o man_n will_v do_v they_o wrong_n so_o must_v they_o be_v kill_v 6_o these_o have_v power_n to_o shut_v heaven_n that_o it_o rain_v not_o in_o the_o day_n of_o their_o prophesy_a and_o have_v power_n over_o water_n to_o turn_v they_o into_o blood_n and_o to_o smite_v the_o earth_n with_o all_o manner_n plague_n as_o often_o as_o they_o will_n 7_o moreover_o when_o they_o finish_v their_o testimony_n the_o beast_n that_o come_v out_o of_o the_o bottomless_a pit_n shall_v make_v war_n against_o they_o and_o shall_v overcome_v they_o and_o kill_v they_o 8_o and_o their_o corpse_n shall_v lie_v in_o the_o street_n of_o the_o great_a city_n which_o be_v call_v spiritual_o sodom_n and_o egypt_n where_o also_o our_o lord_n be_v crucify_v 9_o and_o man_n of_o tribe_n of_o people_n and_o of_o tongue_n and_o nation_n shall_v see_v their_o corpse_n three_o day_n and_o a_o half_a and_o shall_v not_o suffer_v their_o carcase_n to_o be_v put_v in_o grave_n 10_o and_o the_o inhabitans_fw-la of_o the_o earth_n shall_v rejoice_v over_o they_o and_o be_v glad_a and_o shall_v send_v gift_n one_o to_o a_o other_o because_o these_o two_o prophet_n vex_v the_o inhabitans_fw-la of_o the_o earth_n 11_o but_o after_o three_o day_n and_o a_o half_a the_o spirit_n of_o life_n come_v from_o god_n shall_v enter_v into_o they_o and_o they_o shall_v stand_v up_o upon_o their_o foot_n and_o great_a fear_n shall_v fall_v upon_o they_o that_o shall_v see_v they_o 12_o after_o they_o shall_v hear_v a_o great_a voice_n from_o heaven_n say_v unto_o they_o come_v up_o hither_o and_o they_o shall_v ascend_v up_o to_o heaven_n in_o a_o cloud_n and_o their_o enemy_n see_v they_o 13_o and_o the_o same_o hour_n be_v make_v a_o great_a earth_n quake_v and_o the_o ten_o parth_n of_o the_o city_n fall_v and_o in_o the_o earthquake_n be_v slay_v seven_o thousand_o man_n &_o the_o remnant_n be_v fear_v and_o give_v glory_n to_o the_o god_n of_o heaven_n 14_o the_o second_o woe_n be_v past_a and_o behold_v the_o three_o woe_n come_v quick_o 15_o and_o the_o seven_o angel_n blue_v the_o trumpet_n and_o there_o be_v great_a voice_n in_o heaven_n say_v the_o kingdom_n of_o this_o world_n be_v the_o lord_n and_o his_o christ_n and_o he_o shall_v reign_v for_o evermore_o 16_o then_o those_o four_o and_o twenty_o elder_n which_o sit_v before_o god_n on_o their_o throne_n fall_v upon_o their_o face_n and_o worship_v god_n 17_o say_v we_o give_v thou_o thanks_n lord_n god_n almighty_a which_o art_n and_o which_o be_v it_o and_o which_o art_n to_o come_v for_o thou_o have_v receive_v thy_o great_a might_n and_o have_v obtain_v thy_o kingdom_n 18_o and_o the_o gentile_n be_v angry_a and_o thy_o wrath_n be_v come_v and_o the_o time_n of_o the_o dead_a that_o they_o shall_v be_v judge_v and_o that_o thou_o shall_v give_v a_o reward_n unto_o thy_o servant_n the_o prophet_n and_o to_o the_o saint_n and_o to_o they_o that_o fear_v thy_o name_n small_a and_o great_a &_o shall_v destroy_v they_o that_o destroy_v the_o earth_n 19_o then_o the_o temple_n of_o god_n be_v open_v in_o heaven_n and_o the_o ark_n of_o his_o covenant_n be_v see_v in_o his_o temple_n and_o there_o be_v lightning_n and_o voice_n and_o thundering_n and_o eaarthquake_n and_o much_o hail_n analysis_n such_o be_v the_o preparation_n unto_o the_o new_a prophecy_n as_o be_v observe_v in_o the_o eight_o verse_n of_o the_o former_a chapter_n the_o prophecy_n itself_o follow_v in_o the_o first_o fifteen_o verse_n of_o this_o chapter_n which_o belong_v either_o to_o the_o whole_a body_n of_o the_o church_n or_o some_o chief_a member_n of_o it_o as_o touch_v that_o the_o church_n be_v either_o true_a or_o false_a the_o true_a shall_v lie_v hide_v this_o whole_a period_n of_o forty_o month_n small_a very_o secret_a narrow_a which_o be_v show_v by_o the_o temple_n measure_v ver_fw-la 1._o the_o false_a in_o the_o mean_a time_n very_o ample_a and_o spacious_a ver_fw-la 2._o the_o chief_a member_n be_v two_o prophet_n who_o divers_a condition_n be_v show_v according_a to_o a_o threefold_a difference_n of_o time_n the_o first_o by_o a_o thousand_o two_o hundred_o &_o threescore_o day_n all_o which_o space_n be_v black_a they_o shall_v go_v in_o monrn_a apparel_n ver_fw-la 3._o who_o yet_o in_o the_o mean_a while_n shall_v be_v like_o olive_n tree_n &_o candlestick_n ver_fw-la 4._o neither_o shall_v be_v hurt_v of_o any_o without_o punishment_n ver_fw-la 5._o and_o endue_v with_o great_a power_n ver_fw-la 6._o the_o second_o time_n be_v of_o three_o day_n and_o a_o half_a in_o which_o be_v slay_v ver_fw-la 7._o they_o shall_v lie_v unbury_v in_o the_o street_n of_o sodom_n and_o egypt_n ver_fw-la 8.9_o and_o shall_v make_v their_o enemy_n merry_a with_o their_o death_n ver_fw-la 10._o the_o three_o time_n be_v not_o determine_v after_o the_o three_o day_n and_o a_o half_a in_o which_o they_o shall_v rise_v again_o lift_v up_o by_o the_o spirit_n first_o upon_o their_o foot_n which_o shall_v strike_v a_o fear_n into_o their_o enemy_n ver_fw-la 11._o afterward_o into_o heaven_n at_o which_o the_o ten_o part_n of_o the_o city_n shall_v fall_v many_o shall_v be_v slay_v the_o rest_n shall_v be_v make_v afraid_a ver_fw-la 13._o last_o of_o all_o a_o transition_n be_v use_v declare_v the_o end_n of_o the_o sixth_o trumpet_n and_o the_o beginning_n of_o the_o
with_o they_o as_o you_o do_v dream_n of_o of_o the_o three_o reason_n which_o you_o bring_v the_o first_o be_v that_o the_o preach_n in_o all_o the_o world_n be_v a_o sign_n christ_n say_v of_o the_o end_n of_o the_o world_n for_o so_o he_o annex_v &_o then_o shall_v come_v the_o end_n but_o if_o the_o gospel_n shall_v not_o be_v preach_v in_o the_o whole_a world_n proper_o but_o by_o comprehension_n of_o a_o part_n for_o the_o whole_a the_o sign_n will_v be_v of_o no_o value_n for_o in_o that_o manner_n the_o gospel_n be_v preach_v by_o the_o apostle_n through_o all_o the_o world_n in_o the_o first_o twenty_o year_n i_o answer_v whereas_o from_o these_o word_n you_o affirm_v that_o the_o preach_n in_o all_o the_o world_n be_v a_o sign_n of_o the_o end_n of_o the_o world_n this_o be_v you_o bellarmine_n not_o christ_n he_o say_v no_o more_o but_o and_o then_o shall_v come_v the_o consummation_n or_o the_o end_n that_o of_o the_o world_n he_o add_v not_o neither_o be_v the_o end_n or_o consummation_n whereof_o he_o speak_v of_o the_o world_n but_o of_o the_o temple_n &_o of_o the_o jewish_a polity_n the_o law_n whereof_o be_v abrogate_a in_o christ_n death_n but_o now_o also_o by_o dissipation_n of_o the_o nation_n the_o whole_a use_n shall_v be_v take_v away_o for_o the_o disciple_n inquire_v of_o a_o twofold_a end_n ver_fw-la 3._o of_o the_o temple_n &_o of_o the_o world_n of_o the_o first_o christ_n answer_v unto_o the_o 23._o verse_n of_o the_o late_a in_o the_o rest_n of_o the_o chapter_n under_o the_o name_n of_o his_o come_n neither_o have_v he_o satisfy_v the_o demand_n unless_o he_o have_v comprehend_v both_o wherefore_o that_o universal_a preach_n be_v a_o sign_n of_o jerusalems_n destruction_n the_o near_a token_n whereof_o be_v the_o abomination_n of_o desolation_n foretold_v by_o daniel_n which_o be_v next_o add_v may_v teach_v of_o what_o end_n the_o former_a word_n do_v speak_v for_o christ_n answer_v not_o so_o confuse_o and_o intricate_o as_o that_o from_o the_o last_o end_n of_o the_o world_n he_o will_v straightway_o leap_v back_o again_o to_o the_o jew_n affair_n see_v therefore_o in_o this_o place_n he_o speak_v of_o this_o consummation_n and_o not_o of_o any_o other_o there_o be_v no_o necessity_n that_o the_o preach_n through_o the_o whole_a world_n shall_v be_v proper_o your_o second_o reason_n be_v that_o proper_o all_o nation_n be_v promise_v to_o christ_n psal_n 71._o all_o nation_n shall_v serve_v he_o therefore_o the_o preach_v aught_o to_o be_v general_a proper_o i_o answer_v i_o deny_v not_o but_o all_o nation_n shall_v be_v gather_v unto_o christ_n and_o that_o by_o a_o general_a preach_v proper_o before_o he_o come_v unto_o judgement_n for_o preach_v be_v that_o silver_n trumpet_n which_o be_v appoint_v for_o the_o gather_v together_o of_o the_o elect_a and_o i_o find_v in_o the_o scripture_n a_o twofold_a general_n preach_v figurativ_o and_o proper_a as_o in_o the_o end_n of_o this_o chapter_n i_o will_v more_o full_o declare_v but_o what_o be_v this_o to_o the_o come_n of_o antichrist_n it_o be_v show_v that_o he_o be_v come_v a_o thousand_o and_o three_o hundred_o year_n ago_o also_o his_o destruction_n shall_v be_v a_o long_a space_n before_o the_o last_o judgement_n as_o shall_v be_v show_v after_o chap._n 9_o of_o the_o end_n of_o the_o world_n and_o in_o the_o rest_n of_o the_o enarration_n of_o this_o apocalypse_n therefore_o that_o may_v be_v before_o christ_n come_n which_o shall_v follow_v after_o antichrist_n destruction_n and_o in_o very_a deed_n the_o general_a preach_n shall_v not_o begin_v before_o antichrist_n be_v at_o a_o end_n or_o at_o least_o be_v ready_a soon_o after_o to_o die_v the_o time_n may_v not_o be_v confound_v nor_o that_o which_o be_v proper_a to_o one_o be_v transfer_v to_o a_o other_o your_o three_o reason_n be_v that_o the_o gospel_n shall_v be_v preach_v in_o the_o whole_a world_n for_o a_o testimony_n to_o all_o nation_n therefore_o a_o general_a preach_n must_v go_v before_o the_o general_a judgement_n i_o answer_v this_o argument_n be_v one_o with_o the_o former_a but_o that_o it_o be_v after_o a_o sort_n distinguish_v in_o the_o subject_n that_o treat_v of_o the_o salvation_n of_o the_o elect_a this_o of_o the_o just_a condemnation_n of_o the_o reprobate_n but_o the_o answer_n be_v one_o for_o i_o grant_v a_o general_a preach_n must_v go_v before_o the_o general_a judgement_n but_o when_o you_o shall_v have_v prove_v that_o the_o general_a judgement_n and_o antichrist_n be_v thing_n so_o conjoin_v as_o that_o which_o go_v before_o the_o one_o must_v needs_o also_o go_v before_o this_o other_o then_o will_v i_o easy_o grant_v you_o that_o a_o general_a preach_n must_v proper_o go_v before_o antichrist_n and_o now_o as_o if_o you_o have_v put_v the_o matter_n out_o of_o all_o controversy_n you_o go_v in_o hand_n to_o answer_v unto_o paul_n concern_v those_o wore_n rom._n 10.18_o their_o sound_n be_v go_v out_o unto_o all_o the_o earth_n the_o interpretation_n whereof_o you_o bring_v from_o augustine_n jerom_n &_o thomas_n the_o sum_n be_v that_o they_o be_v to_o be_v understand_v figurative_o which_o you_o may_v easy_o have_v obtain_v without_o so_o much_o a_o do_v there_o be_v no_o man_n but_o grant_v that_o the_o like_a scripture_n fore-alledged_n be_v not_o to_o be_v take_v proper_o but_o if_o paul_n speak_v figurativelie_o why_o may_v not_o christ_n likeweise_v because_o it_o be_v not_o absurd_a you_o say_v if_o we_o grant_v that_o our_o lord_n speak_v proper_o and_o the_o apostle_n figurative_o for_o the_o reason_n whereby_o we_o be_v compel_v to_o take_v our_o lord_n in_o a_o proper_a signification_n have_v not_o the_o same_o force_n if_o they_o be_v apply_v to_o paul_n word_n especial_o see_v our_o lord_n speak_v of_o a_o thing_n to_o come_v and_o paul_n of_o a_o thing_n past_a i_o answer_v see_v that_o end_n whereof_o christ_n speak_v be_v only_o of_o the_o city_n not_o of_o the_o whole_a earth_n to_o weet_v of_o jerusalem_n not_o of_o the_o world_n there_o be_v no_o reason_n which_o more_o compel_v we_o to_o take_v our_o lord_n word_n in_o a_o proper_a signification_n than_o those_o word_n of_o paul_n in_o the_o epistle_n to_o the_o roman_n ch_z 1._o verse_n 8._o coloss_n 1.6.23_o speak_v of_o before_o for_o whereas_o you_o say_v that_o paul_n ro._n 10.18_o speak_v of_o a_o thing_n past_a you_o may_v have_v remember_v from_o augustine_n that_o he_o take_v the_o time_n past_a for_o that_o which_o be_v to_o come_v as_o david_n do_v who_o word_n they_o be_v as_o you_o write_v a_o little_a before_o and_o that_o so_o the_o prophet_n be_v wont_a to_o speak_v almost_o every_o where_n of_o thing_n to_o come_v as_o if_o they_o be_v pass_v in_o the_o other_o scripture_n paul_n speak_v of_o that_o thing_n perform_v which_o our_o lord_n foretell_v shall_v be_v perform_v this_o your_o first_o demonstration_n therefore_o be_v altogether_o lame_a have_v no_o certainty_n no_o truth_n but_o it_o be_v such_o a_o sign_n in_o the_o sense_n that_o you_o will_v have_v the_o preach_v to_o be_v take_v of_o antichr_n to_o come_v as_o the_o jew_n have_v feighn_v to_o themselves_o of_o christ_n to_o come_v namely_o such_o as_o man_n bold_a ignorance_n have_v feighn_v without_o any_o authority_n of_o the_o oracle_n of_o god_n wherefore_o see_v you_o have_v write_v nothing_o right_a of_o this_o matter_n i_o will_v endvour_v to_o show_v some_o sure_a thing_n as_o even_o now_o i_o promise_v whereby_o the_o reader_n may_v have_v what_o to_o think_v concern_v this_o matter_n universal_a preach_v therefore_o be_v twofold_a as_o i_o say_v figurative_a and_o proper_a the_o first_o be_v give_v to_o the_o apostle_n for_o a_o sign_n of_o the_o jewish_a desolation_n &_o so_o likewise_o shall_v go_v before_o the_o antichrist_n who_o shall_v not_o come_v forth_o until_o some_o age_n after_o all_o that_o polity_n be_v utter_o extinguish_v the_o late_a which_o we_o call_v general_a proper_o shall_v not_o go_v before_o antichrist_n but_o follow_v for_o after_o he_o be_v slay_v the_o gospel_n shall_v be_v spread_v far_o and_o wide_a even_o unto_o those_o nation_n which_o as_o yet_o never_o have_v the_o hear_n of_o it_o for_o than_o shall_v the_o nation_n bring_v their_o glory_n and_o honour_n unto_o the_o new_a holy_a city_n apoc._n 21.24_o then_o shall_v the_o tree_n grow_v amidd_v the_o street_n of_o the_o heavenly_a city_n who_o leaf_n shall_v minister_v cure_n and_o health_n unto_o the_o nation_n apoc._n 22.2_o then_o shall_v the_o temple_n be_v open_v into_o which_o no_o forreyner_n can_v enter_v during_o the_o seven_o plague_n with_o which_o antichrist_n be_v consume_v apoc._n 15.8_o and_o chap._n 16._o then_o shall_v the_o water_n flow_v out_o of_o the_o temple_n towards_o
year_n before_o the_o first_o resurrection_n then_o they_o that_o first_o rise_v do_v reign_v 1000_o year_n as_o be_v express_o say_v for_o 6._o therefore_o these_o seat_n and_o this_o judgement_n which_o you_o suppose_v to_o be_v of_o the_o last_o end_n do_v go_v before_o it_o 2000_o year_n at_o least_o such_o a_o stranger_n be_v you_o in_o these_o mystery_n then_o to_o that_o which_o be_v allege_v out_o of_o dan._n 12._o bless_a be_v he_o that_o wait_v and_o come_v unto_o the_o 1335_o day_n that_o be_v say_v you_o unto_o 45_o day_n after_o antichrist_n death_n for_o then_o the_o lord_n shall_v come_v to_o judgement_n and_o will_v give_v the_o crown_n of_o righteousness_n to_o they_o that_o overcome_v i_o answer_v as_o touch_v this_o place_n we_o be_v to_o explain_v it_o after_o chap._n 20.11_o and_o it_o may_v be_v one_o day_n we_o will_v take_v in_o hand_n the_o full_a handle_n of_o it_o in_o the_o mean_a while_n let_v we_o know_v that_o the_o destruction_n of_o antichrist_n proper_o so_o call_v be_v not_o here_o handle_v nor_o our_o lord_n come_v to_o the_o last_o judgement_n which_o shall_v not_o make_v all_o bless_a upon_o who_o it_o come_v when_o many_o shall_v desire_v that_o they_o may_v be_v cover_v by_o the_o mountain_n from_o his_o sight_n but_o the_o full_a cal_n of_o the_o jew_n where_o daniel_n stay_v his_o prophecy_n neither_o do_v any_o prophecy_n go_v further_o four_o you_o come_v unto_o mat._n 24._o this_o gospel_n of_o the_o kingdom_n shall_v be_v preach_v in_o the_o whole_a world_n for_o a_o testimony_n to_o all_o nation_n and_o then_o shall_v the_o end_n be_v i_o answer_v here_o be_v no_o mention_n of_o your_o antichrist_n and_o again_o the_o end_n in_o this_o place_n be_v the_o end_n of_o the_o jewish_a polity_n not_o of_o the_o world_n as_o i_o have_v show_v ch_n 4._o against_o your_o first_o demonstration_n but_o you_o add_v the_o word_n follow_v straightway_o after_o the_o tribulation_n of_o those_o day_n the_o sun_n shall_v be_v darken_v and_o the_o moon_n shall_v not_o give_v her_o light_n and_o then_o shall_v appear_v the_o sign_n of_o the_o son_n of_o man_n i_o answer_v neither_o do_v these_o make_v any_o thing_n for_o antichrist_n destruction_n to_o be_v join_v with_o the_o end_n of_o all_o thing_n see_v they_o speak_v not_o of_o he_o at_o al._n yet_o that_o we_o may_v see_v the_o interpretation_n of_o the_o word_n let_v we_o discuss_v they_o a_o little_a with_o one_o consent_n as_o i_o suppose_v it_o be_v apply_v unto_o our_o lord_n last_o judgement_n but_o this_o apocalypss_n teach_v both_o to_o think_v and_o to_o speak_v more_o distinct_o of_o this_o thing_n for_o from_o hence_o we_o do_v understand_v that_o the_o lord_n come_v which_o be_v yet_o to_o be_v hereafter_o be_v twofold_a the_o one_o spiritual_a so_o name_v for_o excellency_n in_o the_o cal_n of_o the_o jew_n the_o other_o corporal_a at_o the_o general_a judgement_n and_o that_o come_v in_o matthew_n seem_v to_o be_v spiritual_a which_o be_v in_o deed_n describe_v to_o be_v most_o glorious_a and_o powerful_a by_o the_o corporal_a furniture_n as_o that_o which_o shall_v be_v both_o a_o clear_a resemblance_n and_o as_o it_o be_v a_o certain_a pawn_n thereof_o &_o also_o no_o change_n shall_v afterward_o come_v between_o which_o may_v make_v the_o corporal_a to_o appear_v as_o new_a and_o that_o thus_o the_o thing_n be_v may_v easy_o be_v perceive_v if_o we_o mind_v how_o the_o disciple_n in_o the_o begin_n of_o the_o chapter_n inquire_v of_o the_o end_n of_o the_o temple_n of_o the_o lord_n come_v and_o the_o end_n of_o the_o world_n without_o doubt_n under_o christ_n come_v they_o comprehend_v the_o restore_n of_o their_o nation_n and_o therefore_o after_o the_o lord_n resurrection_n suppose_v that_o this_o be_v the_o come_n which_o he_o have_v give_v they_o hope_n of_o they_o ask_v he_o again_o lord_n will_v thou_o at_o this_o time_n restore_v the_o kingdom_n to_o israel_n act._n 1.6_o but_o christ_n answer_v and_o by_o a_o continue_a order_n prosecute_a the_o thing_n to_o come_v teach_v first_o the_o destruction_n of_o jerusalem_n and_o dissipation_n of_o the_o jew_n then_o he_o annex_v the_o rest_n of_o the_o course_n of_o thing_n neither_o any_o where_n mention_v he_o any_o restore_n before_o this_o his_o glorious_a come_n therefore_o it_o must_v either_o be_v contain_v in_o this_o his_o appear_v or_o there_o will_v be_v none_o which_o opinion_n if_o the_o disciple_n have_v in_o mind_n conceive_v by_o this_o answer_n sure_o they_o will_v not_o have_v nourish_v any_o expectation_n of_o a_o kingdom_n afterward_o beside_o a_o tribulation_n next_o go_v before_o this_o come_n for_o so_o he_o say_v immediate_o after_o the_o tribulation_n of_o those_o day_n the_o sun_n shall_v be_v darken_v and_o then_o shall_v appear_v the_o sign_n of_o the_o sun_n of_o man_n etc._n etc._n but_o before_o his_o corporal_a come_n no_o such_o tributation_n shall_v go_v immediate_o before_o for_o after_o the_o cal_n of_o the_o jew_n and_o the_o new_a constitute_v church_n god_n will_v wipe_v away_o every_o tear_n from_o their_o eye_n and_o death_n shall_v be_v no_o more_o neither_o shall_v mourning_n nor_o cry_v nor_o sorrow_n be_v any_o more_o for_o the_o former_a thing_n be_v pass_v away_o apoc._n 21.4_o wherefore_o that_o come_n be_v not_o corporal_a it_o may_v be_v also_o that_o have_v some_o force_n which_o he_o say_v that_o the_o sign_n of_o the_o son_n of_o man_n shall_v appear_v as_o if_o purposely_o he_o will_v distinguish_v between_o this_o spiritual_a come_n and_o the_o corporal_a follow_v hereunto_o perteyn_v that_o those_o word_n all_o the_o tribe_n shall_v wail_v etc._n etc._n apoc._n 1_o 7._o we_o have_v there_o show_v to_o belong_v unto_o the_o jew_n and_o that_o this_o wail_n be_v of_o repentance_n which_o will_v be_v too_o late_o at_o the_o corporal_a come_n thus_o much_o brief_o touch_v the_o meaning_n of_o these_o word_n which_o though_o they_o help_v your_o cause_n nothing_o how_o ever_o they_o be_v take_v yet_o be_v it_o not_o impertinent_a by_o the_o way_n to_o seek_v out_o the_o truth_n that_o be_v hide_v in_o they_o therefore_o i_o answer_v unto_o that_o thess_n 2.8_o then_o shall_v the_o wicked_a man_n be_v revel_v who_o the_o lord_n shall_v slay_v with_o the_o spirit_n of_o his_o mouth_n &_o destroy_v with_o the_o brightness_n of_o his_o come_n there_o be_v the_o same_o meaning_n of_o this_o come_n that_o be_v of_o that_o in_o matthew_n at_o the_o cal_n of_o the_o jew_n when_o he_o shall_v give_v a_o most_o bright_a resemblance_n of_o himself_o present_a in_o the_o church_n shall_v antichrist_n utter_o be_v destroy_v as_o we_o make_v plain_n in_o the_o former_a chapter_n for_o after_o the_o throne_n of_o the_o beast_n be_v darken_v the_o way_n shall_v be_v prepare_v for_o the_o king_n of_o the_o east_n that_o be_v the_o jew_n shall_v be_v call_v straight_o after_o rome_n be_v destroy_v for_o she_o only_o hinder_v this_o joy_n then_o after_o the_o beast_n and_o false_a prophet_n and_o dragon_n be_v cut_v off_o that_o be_v after_o the_o bishop_n of_o rome_n and_o the_o turk_n be_v extinct_a as_o after_o shall_v be_v show_v more_o at_o large_a the_o mystery_n shall_v be_v finish_v and_o the_o full_a cal_v perform_v your_o pope_n who_o you_o bellarmine_n boast_v to_o be_v the_o head_n of_o the_o church_n shall_v neither_o be_v head_n nor_o foot_n in_o the_o holy_a congregation_n of_o the_o child_n of_o god_n and_o now_o see_v how_o far_o these_o mountain_n be_v under_o heaven_n who_o top_n you_o stand_v a_o far_o off_o do_v think_v be_v hide_v among_o the_o star_n the_o last_o place_n be_v 1_o john_n 2.18_o child_n it_o be_v the_o last_o hour_n and_o as_o you_o have_v hear_v that_o antichrist_n come_v even_o now_o there_o be_v many_o antichrist_n whereby_o we_o know_v that_o it_o be_v the_o last_o hour_n i_o answer_v what_o john_n here_o conclude_v we_o easy_o see_v and_o acknowledge_v he_o prove_v that_o it_o be_v the_o last_o hour_n because_o then_o many_o antichrist_n be_v come_v for_o antichrist_n shall_v come_v in_o the_o last_o hour_n where_o be_v to_o be_v observe_v that_o john_n allude_v to_o the_o parable_n of_o the_o labourer_n mat._n 20.6_o of_o who_o some_o be_v hire_v about_o the_o eleven_o hour_n compare_v all_o this_o age_n from_o christ_n until_o his_o last_o come_n unto_o this_o last_o eleven_o hour_n then_o that_o he_o say_v this_o noisome_a age_n shall_v be_v of_o antichrist_n who_o he_o put_v not_o off_o unto_o the_o last_o minute_n of_o this_o hour_n but_o deferr_v he_o to_o some_o indefinite_a space_n thereof_o these_o thing_n do_v john_n true_o holy_o agreable_o to_o his_o other_o writing_n but_o what_o must_v you_o needs_o conclude_v from_o hence_o who_o will_v not_o
conversion_n and_o in_o the_o legend_n of_o the_o invention_n of_o the_o cross_n it_o say_v after_o her_o conversion_n for_o she_o go_v to_o seek_v the_o lord_n cross_n and_o certain_a it_o be_v she_o make_v this_o journey_n but_o once_o be_v also_o age_v and_o her_o nephew_n constitute_v caesar_n as_o eusebius_n tel●eth_v in_o vita_fw-la constant_n lib._n 3._o this_o sign_n also_o rely_v upon_o no_o other_o beside_o such_o vain_a witness_n and_o whither_o it_o be_v a_o lie_n or_o no_o let_v the_o reader_n now_o judge_v the_o three_o miracle_n be_v of_o a_o dragon_n lurk_v in_o a_o great_a deep_a ditch_n who_o be_v malcontent_a for_o the_o conversion_n of_o constantine_n and_o his_o people_n kill_v daily_o with_o his_o breath_n more_o than_o 300_o man_n unto_o this_o dragon_n do_v sylvester_n descend_v with_o two_o priest_n at_o the_o commandment_n of_o peter_n and_o paul_n that_o appear_v unto_o he_o and_o tie_v his_o chap_n with_o a_o thread_n and_o seal_v with_o a_o ring_n that_o have_v the_o sign_n of_o the_o cross_n upon_o it_o this_o miracle_n it_o be_v enough_o to_o repeat_v it_o be_v folly_n to_o refute_v by_o these_o miracle_n therefore_o of_o sylvester_n man_n may_v judge_v of_o the_o rest_n but_o you_o will_v say_v these_o thing_n perhaps_o be_v false_o record_v of_o he_o i_o answer_v it_o be_v all_o one_o whither_o the_o pope_n himself_o do_v false_a miracle_n or_o that_o false_a one_o be_v ascribe_v to_o he_o by_o his_o man_n all_o tend_v to_o one_o end_n that_o the_o beast_n may_v be_v worship_v that_o be_v that_o the_o pope_n may_v have_v chief_a honour_n second_o i_o say_v that_o miracle_n be_v cease_v in_o the_o time_n of_o chrysostome_n and_o augustine_n for_o so_o chrysostome_n on_o 1._o cor._n 2._o homil._n 6._o render_v a_o reason_n why_o sign_n be_v do_v in_o the_o apostle_n time_n and_o in_o his_o time_n not_o namely_o because_o by_o how_o much_o the_o more_o certain_a and_o necessary_a thing_n be_v by_o so_o much_o be_v f●ith_o the_o lesser_a and_o a_o little_a after_o by_o how_o much_o the_o more_o certain_a argume●●_n be_v show_v by_o so_o much_o be_v the_o reward_n of_o faith_n aba●ed_v therefore_o their_o wer●_n no_o sign●●_n do_v at_o that_o present_a so_o a●gustine_n also_o de_fw-fr vera_fw-la relic_n cap._n 25._o say_v for_o sing_v the_o catholic_a church_n be_v spread_v and_o found_v through_o the_o whole_a world_n neither_o be_v th●se_a miracle_n suffer_v to_o endure_v unto_o our_o time_n lest_o the_o mind_n shall_v always_o seek_v visible_a thing_n and_o by_o the_o custom_n of_o they_o man_n kind_n shall_v wax_v cold_a which_o by_o the_o newness_n of_o they_o be_v set_v on_o fire_n neither_o ought_v we_o now_o to_o doubt_v that_o they_o be_v to_o be_v believe_v who_o when_o they_o preach_v those_o thing_n which_o few_o can_v attayn_v yet_o can_v they_o persuade_v people_n that_o they_o be_v to_o be_v follow_v and_o again_o they_o say_v why_o be_v not_o the_o miracle_n do_v which_o be_v report_v to_o have_v be_v do_v i_o can_v very_o say_v that_o they_o be_v necessary_a before_o the_o world_n do_v believe_v to_o the_o end_n that_o the_o world_n may_v bel●eve_v whosoever_o still_o seek_v wonder_n that_o he_o may_v believe_v he_o himself_o be_v a_o great_a wonder_n which_o believe_v not_o when_o the_o world_n believe_v these_o testimony_n do_v convince_v all_o your_o popish_a miracle_n which_o be_v almost_o infinite_a of_o fraud_n and_o cozenage_n at_o the_o least_o since_o that_o time_n and_o sure_o it_o seem_v god_n of_o his_o singular_a providence_n have_v put_v a_o end_n to_o the_o old_a miracle_n before_o that_o age_n that_o antichrist_n with_o his_o mate_n may_v the_o better_o be_v know_v when_o he_o shall_v come_v forth_o with_o his_o new_a pomp_n of_o miracle_n three_o there_o be_v not_o want_v man_n of_o your_o own_o crew_n which_o have_v acknowledge_v the_o vanity_n of_o your_o miracle_n as_o alexander_n de_fw-fr hales_n par_fw-fr 4._o quaest_n 53._o man_n 4._o art_n 3._o solu_fw-la 2._o in_o the_o sacrament_n there_o appear_v flesh_n sometime_o by_o man_n procurement_n sometime_o by_o the_o devil_n operation_n and_o nicol._n lyra_n on_o daniel_n sometime_o in_o the_o church_n the_o people_n be_v great_o deceive_v with_o miracle_n feighn_v by_o the_o priest_n or_o such_o as_o stick_v unto_o they_o for_o lucre_n four_o example_n also_o prove_v it_o such_o as_o to_o omit_v innumerable_a other_o be_v in_o that_o famous_a conflict_n of_o the_o franciscan_n and_o dominican_n among_o the_o man_n of_o berne_n about_o the_o birth_n of_o the_o b._n virgin_n mary_n certain_a monk_n as_o peucerus_n tell_v in_o his_o 5._o book_n of_o chronicle_n when_o they_o can_v not_o prevail_v by_o authority_n of_o testimony_n betake_v themselves_o for_o help_v unto_o juggle_a steight_n for_o hide_v themselves_o in_o a_o image_n of_o the_o bless_a virgin_n that_o be_v artificial_o make_v for_o this_o purpose_n they_o counterfeit_a in_o her_o marvellous_a gesture_n so_o as_o they_o persuade_v the_o people_n that_o she_o do_v mourn_v lament_v complayn_n shed_v tear_n and_o give_v answesr_n to_o they_o that_o ask_v of_o she_o which_o fraud_n be_v manifest_v the_o author_n of_o it_o be_v burn_v the_o day_n before_o the_o kalend_n of_o july_n in_o the_o year_n 1590._o where_o be_v to_o be_v observe_v that_o this_o deceit_n be_v hide_v from_o the_o ignorant_a people_n before_o there_o rise_v a_o contention_n between_o the_o religious_a themselves_o to_z wete_z the_o master_n of_o these_o juggle_n who_o know_v well_o by_o what_o sleight_n they_o be_v wont_a to_o deceive_v the_o world_n do_v easy_o find_v out_o the_o author_n of_o such_o a_o wicked_a prank_n but_o let_v i_o come_v unto_o your_o own_o family_n you_o know_v that_o at_o rome_n the_o name_n of_o one_o father_n justinian_n a_o jesuite_n be_v famous_a who_o first_o feighn_v himself_o a_o leper_n that_o he_o may_v deceiv_v man_n by_o a_o lie_a miracle_n of_o receive_v his_o health_n then_o when_o this_o succeed_v well_o with_o he_o he_o feighn_v that_o his_o jesuitical_a habit_n be_v strike_v through_o with_o the_o bullet_n of_o a_o certain_a gun_n shut_v off_o but_o when_o the_o same_o come_v to_o his_o flesh_n by_o god_n admirable_a power_n it_o rebound_v back_o without_o any_o hurt_v of_o he_o why_o yea_o for_o jesuit_n body_n be_v brazen_a wall_n these_o thing_n at_o the_o first_o be_v believe_v afterward_o they_o be_v find_v false_a so_o that_o now_o at_o rome_n when_o any_o impudent_a fraud_n be_v cast_v in_o a_o man_n tooth_n he_o be_v call_v the_o second_o justinian_n but_o this_o be_v no_o new_a thing_n to_o jesuit_n who_o many_o of_o your_o own_o side_n do_v confess_v as_o be_v public_o report_v to_o make_v no_o conscience_n of_o semble_v dissemble_a feighning_n and_o belie_v all_o thing_n so_o as_o it_o be_v for_o their_o benefit_n for_o this_o cause_n they_o speak_v shrewd_o of_o the_o miracle_n of_o ignatius_n and_o your_o xaverius_n in_o who_o you_o glory_n not_o only_o as_o a_o principal_a ornament_n of_o the_o order_n of_o jesuit_n but_o also_o of_o the_o whole_a popish_a religion_n de_fw-fr notis_fw-la ecclesiae_fw-la lib._n 4._o cap._n 14._o and_o it_o be_v no_o marvel_n though_o xaverius_n among_o the_o indian_n so_o far_o from_o all_o trial_n do_v all_o those_o marvellous_a work_n which_o maphaeus_n ribademeirus_n and_o tursellinus_n make_v mention_n of_o it_o be_v rather_o to_o be_v marvele_v that_o he_o die_v the_o common_a death_n and_o be_v not_o rather_o take_v away_o in_o a_o fyerie_a chariot_n that_o be_v reserve_v with_o henoch_n and_o elias_n he_o may_v come_v at_o last_o to_o destroy_v antichrist_n do_v you_o give_v credit_n to_o these_o indian_a letter_n when_o as_o you_o may_v remember_v how_o that_o the_o jesuit_n publish_v in_o a_o book_n set_v out_o that_o theodore_n beza_n be_v dead_a and_o before_o he_o give_v up_o the_o ghost_n be_v convert_v by_o mean_n of_o one_o of_o your_o man_n to_o your_o romish_a religion_n &_o that_o by_o his_o exemple_n many_o other_o citizen_n of_o geneva_n renounce_v their_o former_a error_n embrace_v the_o popish_a doctrine_n you_o have_v not_o forget_v i_o trow_v for_o ignorant_a you_o can_v be_v of_o a_o matter_n so_o rife_o in_o all_o man_n mouth_n how_o theod._n beza_n be_v marvellous_o raise_v again_o from_o the_o dead_a do_v by_o letter_n write_v in_o french_a and_o latin_a engrave_v as_o on_o a_o public_a pillar_n for_o all_o christendom_n the_o incredible_a impudence_n of_o your_o jesuit_n now_o therefore_o you_o may_v publish_v the_o indian_a miracle_n of_o xaverius_n when_o your_o so_o egregious_a prank_n be_v in_o the_o open_a light_n and_o eye_n of_o all_o europe_n endless_a it_o be_v to_o sail_v into_o the_o sea_n of_o all_o your_o lie_a sign_n therefore_o have_v i_o lief_o to_o
death_n 15_o and_o who_o soever_o be_v not_o sound_v write_v in_o the_o book_n of_o life_n be_v cast_v into_o the_o lake_n of_o fire_n the_o analysis_n we_o have_v speak_v of_o the_o destruction_n of_o the_o beast_n the_o destruction_n of_o the_o dragon_n follow_v who_o history_n see_v it_o be_v the_o conclusion_n of_o the_o whole_a warrfare_n of_o the_o church_n under_o the_o cross_n first_o he_o repeat_v brief_o the_o thing_n before_o speak_v second_o by_o a_o new_a prophecy_n he_o declare_v the_o last_o ruin_n of_o he_o the_o repetition_n be_v frame_v according_a to_o three_o time_n the_o first_o in_o which_o the_o devil_n be_v take_v in_o the_o first_o verse_n the_o second_o how_o long_o he_o be_v bind_v in_o the_o second_o verse_n the_o three_o when_o and_o how_o long_o he_o shall_v be_v loose_v in_o the_o end_n of_o the_o three_o verse_n and_o all_o these_o thing_n brief_o which_o after_o be_v repeat_v more_o large_o by_o mention_v therewithal_o the_o state_n of_o the_o church_n of_o what_o sort_n it_o be_v in_o the_o mean_a time_n through_o every_o of_o those_o period_n in_o the_o first_o wherein_o the_o dragon_n be_v take_v the_o saint_n be_v behead_v at_o the_o begin_n of_o the_o four_o verse_n in_o the_o second_o wherein_o the_o devil_n or_o dragon_n be_v bind_v there_o be_v a_o unlike_a condition_n of_o man_n for_o the_o saint_n reign_v a_o thousand_o year_n which_o be_v the_o time_n of_o the_o prisomment_n of_o the_o devil_n both_o in_o respect_n of_o the_o soul_n slay_v in_o the_o former_a period_n and_o also_o in_o respect_n of_o they_o that_o be_v on_o earth_n who_o strive_v with_o the_o beast_n neither_o do_v submit_v under_o his_o yoke_n by_o any_o mean_n in_o the_o same_o verse_n the_o other_o live_v not_o again_o all_o that_o time_n but_o be_v deceive_v by_o the_o fraud_n and_o imposture_n of_o the_o beast_n lay_v as_o it_o be_v dead_a and_o bury_v in_o their_o error_n in_o the_o five_o verse_n the_o three_o period_n which_o be_v of_o the_o devil_n be_v loose_v relate_v both_o the_o condition_n of_o the_o elect_a and_o also_o the_o fury_n of_o the_o dragon_n rage_v again_o those_o thousand_o year_n be_v expire_v the_o elect_v live_v not_o a_o few_o as_o in_o the_o second_o period_n but_o they_o rise_v again_o in_o a_o far_o great_a multitude_n the_o error_n of_o the_o beast_n be_v leave_v and_o themselves_o convert_v unto_o true_a godliness_n which_o resurrection_n be_v call_v the_o first_o and_o bless_v because_o of_o the_o priestly_a and_o kingly_a dignity_n &_o long_o continue_v of_o the_o reign_n with_o christ_n in_o the_o sixth_o verse_n the_o fury_n of_o the_o dragon_n after_o a_o thousand_o year_n prisonment_n shall_v be_v revive_v in_o the_o seven_o verse_n he_o shall_v muster_v soldier_n know_v by_o name_n gog_n and_o magog_n infinite_a in_o multitude_n in_o the_o eight_o ver_fw-la he_o shall_v spoil_v all_o far_o and_o near_o and_o shall_v besiege_v the_o tent_n of_o the_o saint_n in_o the_o begin_n of_o the_o nine_o verse_n and_o so_o far_o proceed_v the_o repetition_n of_o the_o former_a age_n that_o which_o do_v follow_v from_o thence_o be_v to_o come_v his_o attempt_n against_o the_o belove_a city_n and_o utter_a overthrow_n both_o of_o the_o army_n in_o the_o end_n of_o the_o nine_o verse_n and_o also_o of_o himself_o in_o the_o ten_o verse_n and_o thus_o far_o be_v the_o destruction_n of_o the_o enemy_n afterward_o the_o happiness_n of_o the_o saint_n be_v handle_v whereby_o the_o church_n shall_v shine_v have_v escape_v all_o these_o calamity_n which_o felicity_n be_v declare_v two_o way_n both_o by_o the_o gather_n together_o of_o the_o saint_n in_o the_o rest_n of_o this_o chapter_n and_o condition_n of_o they_o be_v gather_v in_o those_o that_o follow_v the_o gather_n have_v a_o preparation_n and_o execution_n the_o preparation_n be_v of_o the_o judge_n fit_v upon_o a_o great_a throne_n in_o the_o eleven_o verse_n the_o execution_n be_v partly_o summary_o towards_o they_o that_o be_v to_o be_v judge_v where_o the_o form_n of_o judgement_n be_v out_o of_o certain_a book_n according_a to_o the_o work_n verse_n twelve_o and_o the_o manner_n of_o standind_n before_o the_o judgement_n seat_n the_o resurrection_n in_o the_o thirteen_o verse_n partly_o by_o name_n upon_o death_n and_o hell_n and_o those_o that_o be_v not_o find_v in_o the_o book_n of_o life_n in_o the_o fourteen_o and_o fifteen_o verse_n scholion_n 1_o after_o i_o see_v a_o angel_n come_v down_o how_o great_a pain_n the_o interpreter_n have_v take_v in_o this_o chapter_n we_o may_v see_v it_o by_o their_o commentary_n especial_o the_o papist_n torment_v themselves_o very_o much_o to_o who_o this_o be_v a_o labyrinth_n out_o of_o which_o they_o can_v rid_v themselves_o no_o more_o then_o of_o all_o the_o other_o thing_n in_o this_o book_n in_o which_o they_o wander_v hither_o and_o thither_o and_o err_v neither_o can_v find_v any_o come_n out_o any_o where_o as_o it_o must_v needs_o be_v where_o the_o truth_n be_v not_o for_o a_o guide_n the_o former_a exposition_n the_o rehearsal_n of_o a_o great_a part_n of_o which_o be_v here_o make_v will_v make_v i_o hope_v all_o thing_n easy_a &_o ready_a to_o we_o first_o then_o in_o repeat_v thing_n past_a to_o the_o end_n that_o the_o thing_n speak_v of_o before_o here_o and_o there_o touch_v the_o dragon_n be_v now_o propose_v to_o be_v see_v all_o at_o once_o may_v the_o better_o be_v understand_v he_o speak_v of_o his_o apprehension_n which_o brief_o show_v by_o consequent_a that_o he_o be_v loose_v before_o &_o in_o that_o time_n make_v those_o stir_n which_o he_o be_v wont_a when_o he_o have_v the_o reins_n loose_a from_o which_o it_o may_v be_v gather_v easy_o what_o be_v the_o condition_n of_o the_o primitive_a church_n as_o long_o as_o this_o disturber_n may_v confound_v all_o thing_n at_o his_o pleasure_n but_o at_o length_n his_o fury_n be_v bridle_v &_o his_o power_n weaken_v by_o the_o angel_n a_o description_n of_o who_o be_v here_o make_v who_o this_o angel_n be_v we_o have_v learn_v from_o the_o former_a thing_n to_o weet_v that_o it_o be_v constantine_n the_o great_a who_o be_v bear_v the_o manchilde_n of_o the_o church_n &_o make_v war_n for_o his_o mother_n sake_n against_o the_o tyrant_n the_o heathen_a emperor_n the_o dragon_n itself_o he_o be_v say_v to_o come_v down_o from_o heaven_n bring_v unexpected_a aid_n in_o chap._n 12.6.7_o etc._n etc._n so_o the_o angel_n be_v to_o fight_v against_o the_o whore_n and_o to_o assail_v she_o unwares_o be_v say_v to_o come_v down_o from_o heaven_n in_o the_o eighteen_o chapter_n and_o first_o verse_n he_o have_v the_o key_n of_o the_o bottomless_a pit_n power_n to_o open_v the_o same_o and_o shut_v up_o the_o dragon_n but_o not_o to_o cast_v forth_o the_o hellish_a smoke_n in_o which_o respect_n only_o the_o key_n be_v give_v to_o the_o angel_n of_o the_o bottomless_a pit_n chap._n 9.1_o there_o be_v therefore_o a_o great_a difference_n between_o these_o two_o key_n the_o great_a chain_n be_v the_o foundation_n of_o the_o christian_a liberty_n lay_v by_o he_o by_o which_o he_o hold_v the_o dragon_n bind_v as_o with_o chain_n by_o a_o long_a succession_n of_o time_n that_o he_o can_v not_o move_v himself_o to_o make_v any_o trouble_n for_o now_o the_o way_n be_v stop_v up_o against_o those_o heathen_a to_o the_o chief_a sovereignty_n or_o if_o they_o attain_v to_o it_o by_o fraud_n as_o julian_n yet_o they_o be_v so_o bind_v &_o tie_v with_o this_o chain_n that_o they_o can_v not_o exercise_v their_o former_a cruelty_n 2_o who_o take_v the_o dragon_n overcome_v he_o by_o open_a war_n chap._n 6.15_o &_o 12.7_o for_o when_o those_o tyrant_n be_v overcome_v the_o strength_n of_o the_o dragon_n be_v take_v away_o neither_o can_v he_o entreprise_v any_o such_o thing_n as_o he_o exercise_v before_o the_o heathen_a emperor_n be_v note_v by_o the_o name_n of_o the_o very_a devil_n as_o also_o in_o chap._n 12.9_o the_o article_n be_v also_o add_v for_o the_o pre-eminence_n of_o the_o wickedness_n because_o they_o may_v by_o right_o be_v esteem_v by_o his_o name_n of_o who_o poison_n maliciousness_n and_o wickedness_n they_o have_v be_v the_o minister_n worthy_o do_v a_o man_n bear_v his_o name_n who_o manner_n and_o disposition_n he_o take_v upon_o he_o this_o apprehension_n signifi_v that_o whole_a first_o period_n from_o the_o time_n of_o john_n and_o before_o even_o unto_o constantine_n the_o last_o part_n of_o it_o be_v put_v for_o the_o whole_a for_o say_v that_o now_o the_o dragon_n be_v take_v he_o will_v have_v it_o to_o be_v understand_v that_o before_o he_o run_v to_o and_o fro_o devise_v as_o much_o evil_a as_o he_o can_v as_o we_o learn_v in_o the_o
first_o particle_n be_v proper_o of_o one_o affirm_v show_v the_o certainty_n of_o a_o thing_n in_o which_o yet_o may_v be_v understand_v the_o wish_a verb_n let_v it_o be_v do_v or_o some_o such_o like_a word_n for_o so_o it_o be_v in_o the_o end_n of_o the_o book_n yea_o come_v lord_n jesus_n as_o if_o he_o shall_v say_v i_o beseech_v thou_o come_v so_o as_o thou_o have_v promise_v chap._n 22.20_o it_o be_v like_o that_o both_o the_o particle_n be_v use_v in_o the_o same_o sense_n otherwise_o the_o diversity_n both_o of_o tongue_n and_o signification_n will_v not_o note_v out_o any_o conjunction_n of_o all_o people_n to_o which_o end_n this_o twofolde_a proper_a form_n of_o speech_n seem_v to_o be_v use_v amen_n not_o only_o apperteine_n to_o one_o assevering_a but_o also_o supplicate_v and_o earnest_o strive_v that_o the_o thing_n may_v come_v to_o pass_v as_o in_o jeremy_n chap._n 28.6_o amen_n so_o do_v it_o the_o last_o expund_v the_o former_a 9_o i_o be_o alpha_n and_o omega_n hitherto_o have_v be_v the_o inscription_n of_o the_o epistle_n now_o he_o enter_v into_o the_o narration_n itself_o where_o first_o for_o the_o authority_n of_o the_o write_v undertake_v there_o be_v set_v down_o a_o threefold_a property_n of_o the_o person_n call_v the_o excel_a power_n of_o create_v truth_n in_o his_o promise_n and_o exceed_a power_n of_o govern_v the_o power_n be_v first_o declare_v metaphorical_o and_o afterward_o in_o proper_a word_n for_o the_o beginning_n &_o end_v do_v expound_v what_o alpha_n &_o omega_n mean_v of_o which_o that_o be_v the_o first_o and_o this_o the_o last_o letter_n of_o the_o greek_a alphabet_n by_o a_o metaphor_n they_o be_v apply_v to_o any_o beginning_n and_o end_v whatsoever_o the_o word_n be_v plain_o of_o a_o certain_a order_n and_o relation_n to_o the_o creature_n in_o which_o respect_n they_o can_v not_o proper_o note_v out_o eternity_n which_o thing_n be_v absolute_a nor_o in_o any_o regard_n be_v to_o be_v measure_v according_a to_o the_o creature_n therefore_o i_o be_o alpha_n and_o omega_n have_v this_o meaning_n to_o wit_n the_o maker_n of_o all_o thing_n and_o again_o the_o end_n whereunto_o all_o thing_n be_v to_o be_v refer_v who_o in_o the_o beginning_n have_v make_v all_o thing_n and_o that_o for_o my_o own_o glory_n it_o be_v the_o abridgement_n of_o that_o which_o the_o wise_a man_n say_v the_o lord_n have_v wrought_v all_o thing_n for_o himself_o yea_o the_o wicked_a for_o the_o day_n of_o evil_a prov._n 16.4_o the_o constant_a verity_n of_o god_n in_o his_o promise_n be_v declare_v by_o a_o distribution_n of_o a_o threefold_a time_n as_o we_o have_v show_v out_o of_o ver_fw-la 4._o his_o allmightines_n in_o the_o end_n of_o the_o verse_n seem_v to_o appertain_v to_o that_o excellent_a power_n of_o govern_v all_o thing_n according_a to_o his_o will_n in_o which_o there_o shine_v no_o less_o his_o incomprehensible_a majesty_n then_o in_o the_o first_o creation_n of_o thing_n for_o this_o teach_v that_o his_o strength_n be_v not_o spend_v in_o his_o first_o work_n but_o for_o ever_o be_v of_o force_n without_o any_o lessen_v which_o be_v not_o tire_v with_o any_o weariness_n nether_a oppress_v with_o the_o weight_n of_o business_n but_o remain_v infinite_o beyond_o all_o power_n of_o any_o create_a spirit_n in_o do_v all_o thing_n such_o a_o one_o be_v he_o from_o who_o the_o commandment_n of_o writing_n proceed_v a_o most_o mighty_a creator_n a_o most_o faithful_a promiser_n and_o the_o chief_a hovernour_n of_o all_o thing_n 9_o i_o john_n the_o person_n also_o call_v have_v great_a weight_n for_o credit_n i_o john_n a_o apostle_n a_o brother_n and_o companion_n in_o affliction_n banish_v into_o patmos_n for_o the_o word_n of_o god_n ravish_v from_o heaven_n in_o the_o spirit_n on_o the_o lord_n day_n why_o shall_v not_o this_o man_n speak_v most_o certain_a truth_n ¶_o and_o the_o patience_n of_o jesus_n christ_n the_o common_a translation_n have_v and_o the_o patience_n in_o christ_n jesus_n so_o also_o montanus_n the_o interpreter_n of_o aretas_n by_o chr._n jesus_n therehy_n the_o sense_n be_v nothing_o at_o all_o or_o but_o little_o change_v whether_o any_o read_v it_o according_a to_o the_o construction_n as_o th._n beza_n or_o as_o these_o with_o a_o preposition_n all_o tend_v hereunto_o that_o the_o communion_n of_o the_o faithful_a be_v it_o either_o of_o affliction_n or_o of_o a_o kingdom_n lean_a on_o christ_n the_o alone_a head_n as_o upon_o the_o ground_n and_o foundation_n we_o must_v take_v heed_n lest_o with_o the_o jesuite_n we_o do_v interpret_v in_o christ_n jesus_n for_o the_o end_n for_o christ_n jesus_n for_o so_o the_o communion_n of_o the_o kingdom_n amongst_o the_o faithful_a shall_v be_v establish_v without_o christ_n as_o if_o all_o shall_v not_o together_o grow_v up_o in_o he_o but_o shall_v as_o it_o be_v be_v join_v together_o between_o themselves_o into_o some_o outward_a thing_n a_o part_n from_o he_o patmos_n a_o island_n of_o the_o sea_n icarium_n thirty_o mile_n in_o compass_n at_o this_o day_n it_o be_v call_v palmosa_n as_o the_o latter_a geographer_n will_v have_v it_o but_o in_o strabo_n it_o have_v nothing_o memorable_a except_o the_o name_n he_o be_v wont_a to_o mention_v careful_o even_o the_o very_a wood_n of_o palm_n tree_n if_o there_o be_v any_o much_o more_o will_v he_o have_v mention_v so_o great_a plenty_n whereby_o the_o island_n shall_v be_v worthy_a to_o be_v renown_v whereupon_o this_o name_n may_v just_o be_v suspect_v unless_o perhaps_o the_o succeed_a age_n cause_v it_o to_o be_v more_o happy_a in_o fruitfulness_n munster_n suppose_v that_o patmos_n be_v that_o possidium_n of_o which_o ptolemaeus_n speak_v in_o his_o table_n of_o geography_n book_n 5._o chap._n 2._o but_o possidium_n in_o the_o same_o place_n be_v a_o promontory_n of_o the_o isle_n chios_n not_o far_o of_o from_o the_o city_n chios_n from_o thence_o they_o sail_v about_o the_o island_n and_o leave_v it_o on_o the_o right_a hand_n str._n book_n 14._o but_o patmos_n lie_v together_o with_o corasius_fw-la towards_o the_o west_n of_o icaria_n but_o this_o towards_o the_o west_n of_o samos_n strab._n book_n 10._o but_o thou_o must_v observe_v that_o john_n do_v not_o plain_o mention_v his_o banishement_n but_o only_o that_o he_o be_v in_o the_o isle_n sober_o bear_v his_o misery_n not_o proud_o augment_v it_o by_o vain_a boast_n ¶_o for_o the_o word_n of_o god_n that_o be_v for_o have_v preach_v it_o not_o for_o to_o preach_v it_o for_o john_n of_o his_o accord_n go_v not_o thither_o to_o preach_v but_o because_o he_o have_v preach_v at_o ephesus_n and_o elsewhere_o in_o asia_n domitian_n the_o tyrant_n as_o ireneus_fw-la and_o other_o record_n banish_v he_o thither_o the_o same_o isle_n seem_v to_o have_v be_v almost_o desolate_a and_o void_a of_o inhabitant_n consider_v especial_o that_o the_o neighbour_n island_n icaria_n much_o more_o renown_a because_o of_o the_o scarcity_n of_o inhabitans_fw-la as_o strabo_n report_v do_v bestow_v the_o use_n and_o commodity_n of_o their_o pasture_n on_o the_o soraine_a samian_o 10_o and_o i_o be_v ravish_v in_o the_o spirit_n 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d i_o be_v in_o the_o spirit_n that_o be_v i_o begin_v to_o be_v move_v in_o the_o spirit_n for_o to_o see_v and_o understand_v those_o thing_n which_o do_v far_o surpass_v man_n capacity_n as_o of_o old_a the_o ancient_a prophet_n be_v lead_v by_o the_o same_o spirit_n do_v pronunce_v of_o thing_n to_o come_v with_o no_o less_o certainty_n then_o of_o thing_n present_a or_o past_a after_o the_o same_o manner_n marck_n speak_v of_o another_o kind_n of_o spirit_n and_o there_o be_v in_o their_o synagogue_n a_o man_n with_o a_o unclean_a spirit_n chap._n 1.23_o and_o again_o there_o meet_v he_o a_o man_n out_o of_o the_o sepulcher_n in_o a_o unclean_a spirit_n chap._n 5.2_o but_o altogether_o contrary_a in_o the_o manner_n of_o operation_n not_o only_o in_o respect_n of_o holiness_n or_o unholines_n but_o also_o of_o the_o sweet_a and_o quiet_a motion_n see_v that_o the_o agitation_n with_o which_o the_o most_o wicked_a spirit_n do_v torment_fw-mi man_n be_v violent_a and_o fearful_a whence_o the_o possess_a be_v most_o common_o depryve_v either_o of_o all_o their_o sense_n or_o at_o the_o least_o of_o some_o of_o they_o but_o those_o who_o be_v fill_v with_o the_o holy_a ghost_n they_o be_v more_o strenghtn_v in_o all_o the_o faculty_n of_o the_o soul_n both_o have_v they_o obedient_a to_o they_o who_o they_o do_v possess_v but_o the_o one_o by_o gracious_a incline_n the_o other_o by_o cruel_a constrain_a as_o the_o exemple_n of_o the_o one_o and_o of_o the_o other_o do_v make_v it_o plain_a ¶_o on_o a_o lord_n day_n see_v of_o this_o th._n bezam_n it_o be_v very_o like_a that_o
devil_n of_o who_o synagogue_n they_o be_v the_o chief_a ruler_n ¶_o fear_v none_o of_o those_o thing_n which_o thou_o shall_v suffer_v now_o he_o instruct_v they_o against_o the_o future_a evil_n which_o be_v apparent_a to_o be_v more_o grievous_a than_o those_o that_o be_v pass_v those_o thing_n with_o which_o the_o jew_n do_v trouble_v they_o at_o the_o present_a then_o also_o those_o false_a accusation_n of_o the_o bishop_n while_o constantine_n live_v be_v light_a skirmish_n of_o a_o sharp_a battle_n follow_v by_o and_o by_o after_o therefore_o he_o describe_v diligent_o all_o the_o manner_n of_o this_o combat_n who_o shall_v be_v the_o chief_a captain_n of_o it_o with_o what_o kind_n of_o cruelty_n he_o shall_v rage_v to_o what_o end_n and_o how_o long_o the_o prince_n be_v the_o devil_n who_o after_o we_o shall_v learn_v to_o denote_v the_o heathen_a emperor_n open_a enemy_n of_o the_o truth_n as_o chap._n 12.9_o this_o do_v comprehend_v also_o the_o heretic_n christian_n in_o name_n but_o in_o very_a truth_n wolf_n devour_v the_o flock_n the_o kind_n of_o punishment_n be_v the_o prison_n under_o which_o as_o the_o history_n teach_v be_v comprehend_v proscription_n confiscation_n of_o good_n banishment_n slaughter_n fire_n torture_n with_o all_o these_o thing_n the_o devil_n shall_v great_o torment_v to_o draw_v man_n from_o the_o truth_n but_o this_o persecution_n shall_v endure_v for_o ten_o day_n only_o and_o a_o day_n in_o this_o book_n be_v take_v for_o a_o year_n the_o number_n also_o of_o ten_o some_o time_n signify_v proper_o some_o time_n by_o synecdoche_n note_v out_o some_o uncerten_a number_n i_o think_v that_o both_o be_v here_o use_v that_o certain_a number_n shall_v be_v of_o the_o type_n and_o uncerten_a of_o the_o antitype_n therefore_o as_o touch_v smyrna_n itself_o this_o persecution_n fall_v out_o in_o the_o time_n of_o trajan_n which_o devil_n a_o profess_a enemy_n of_o the_o truth_n do_v reign_n next_o after_o this_o writing_n very_o fierce_a against_o christian_n deliver_v man_n into_o prison_n and_o death_n that_o he_o may_v make_v they_o to_o renounce_v the_o profession_n of_o christ_n smyrna_n can_v not_o be_v free_a from_o the_o common_a calamity_n especial_o when_o bythynia_n be_v nigh_o to_o it_o do_v altogether_o abound_v with_o the_o murder_n of_o the_o christian_n as_o the_o epistle_n of_o plinius_n secundus_fw-la to_o trajan_n do_v show_v from_o whence_o also_o it_o may_v be_v gather_v after_o a_o sort_n of_o what_o continuance_n the_o persecution_n be_v for_o in_o the_o fourteen_o year_n of_o trajan_n pliny_n relate_v to_o he_o the_o multitude_n of_o those_o that_o be_v slay_v be_v a_o occasion_n of_o stay_v that_o rage_n and_o of_o obtain_v some_o breathe_n what_o year_n it_o begin_v it_o be_v not_o plain_o set_v down_o by_o the_o history-writer_n some_o suppose_v that_o it_o be_v at_o the_o very_a beginning_n of_o his_o reign_n but_o in_o the_o four_o year_n triumph_v over_o the_o dace_n and_o scythian_n he_o seem_v to_o have_v have_v first_o his_o kingdom_n hinder_v so_o as_o he_o can_v not_o have_v leisure_n to_o afflict_v the_o christian_n but_o it_o be_v certain_a that_o he_o exercise_v his_o cruelty_n ten_o year_n at_o least_o it_o be_v likely_a that_o the_o end_n of_o that_o war_n give_v the_o beginning_n of_o torment_a christian_n neither_o be_v it_o needful_a that_o this_o affliction_n be_v refer_v to_o smyrna_n only_o but_o that_o it_o be_v that_o general_a of_o which_o he_o make_v mention_n in_o the_o church_n of_o philadelphia_n which_o shall_v come_v upon_o the_o whole_a world_n chap._n 3.10_o as_o touch_v the_o antitype_n constance_n and_o valence_n emperor_n in_o name_n christian_n in_o deed_n no_o less_o fierce_a against_o the_o orthodox_n and_o true_a godly_a people_n than_o once_o the_o ethnic_a devil_n be_v in_o which_o account_n also_o be_v hold_v the_o inferior_a minister_n of_o that_o wickedness_n of_o the_o people_n syrianus_n a_o captain_n and_o sebastianus_n governor_n of_o the_o army_n manicheus_fw-la of_o the_o bishop_n eusebius_n once_o of_o nicomedia_n then_o of_o constantinople_n macedonius_n georgius_n alexandrinus_n and_o other_o of_o that_o sort_n not_o bishop_n but_o monster_n who_o barbarous_a cruelty_n be_v scarce_o match_v by_o any_o tyrant_n of_o old_a the_o matter_n be_v handle_v with_o brawl_n chide_n and_o calumny_n of_o all_o sort_n but_o after_o the_o death_n of_o constantine_n the_o devil_n be_v to_o come_v forth_o on_o the_o stage_n and_o what_o broil_n be_v raise_v up_o it_o be_v a_o light_a thing_n to_o drive_v holy_a man_n into_o banishement_n to_o cast_v very_o many_o into_o prison_n to_o kill_v almost_o a_o infinite_a number_n they_o tyrannize_v with_o torment_n and_o all_o manner_n of_o contumelious_a punishment_n some_o be_v beat_v with_o stripe_n unto_o death_n some_o mark_v in_o the_o forehead_n with_o print_n of_o hot_a iron_n some_o torment_v with_o other_o torture_n yea_o the_o breast_n be_v cut_v of_o from_o holy_a woman_n unto_o some_o they_o be_v burn_v of_o with_o a_o hot_a iron_n to_o many_o with_o egg_n roast_v in_o the_o fire_n to_o a_o exceed_a great_a heat_n who_o will_v believe_v that_o any_o such_o thing_n can_v have_v be_v infer_v upon_o christian_n from_o man_n of_o christian_a profession_n it_o can_v be_v show_v in_o few_o word_n how_o full_a of_o calamity_n those_o time_n be_v but_o see_v socrat._n book_n 2._o and_o 4._o theod._n book_n 2._o and_o 4._o sozom._n book_n 3._o 4._o 6._o and_o although_o this_o tyranny_n do_v continue_v above_o fourteen_o year_n yet_o notwithstanding_o it_o do_v make_v those_o ten_o day_n of_o the_o same_o manner_n that_o we_o have_v say_v ¶_o be_v faithful_a unto_o the_o death_n he_o provoqu_v unto_o fortitude_n the_o reward_n be_v propound_v to_o be_v eternal_a life_n it_o be_v a_o profitable_a loss_n which_o be_v recompense_v with_o so_o great_a gain_n what_o shall_v nor_o the_o godly_a undergo_v most_o willing_o be_v sure_a of_o such_o a_o reward_n it_o be_v fit_v to_o the_o time_n minister_a comfort_n against_o the_o loss_n of_o this_o present_a life_n to_o which_o purpose_n he_o speak_v before_o that_o he_o be_v alive_a which_o have_v be_v dead_a that_o by_o his_o exemple_n they_o shall_v learn_v not_o to_o fear_v death_n which_o they_o shall_v know_v to_o be_v a_o mean_a between_o god_n and_o they_o of_o eternal_a happiness_n 11_o he_o that_o have_v a_o ear_n the_o wont_a conclusion_n warn_v all_o man_n to_o hearken_v diligent_o to_o these_o instruction_n touch_v fortitude_n and_o courage_n of_o mind_n in_o affliction_n we_o be_v instruct_v before_o against_o the_o sluggishness_n which_o be_v inbread_n in_o we_o here_o we_o be_v arm_v against_o outward_a violence_n the_o reward_n which_o be_v add_v to_o the_o end_n he_o that_o overcome_v shall_v not_o be_v hurt_v of_o the_o second_o death_n be_v common_a to_o the_o whole_a church_n that_o which_o be_v before_o belong_v proper_o to_o the_o angel_n the_o knowledge_n whereof_o notwithstanding_o be_v very_o necessary_a to_o the_o people_n as_o have_v be_v say_v before_o but_o see_v that_o this_o conflict_n be_v to_o be_v undergo_v as_o well_o of_o the_o people_n as_o of_o the_o pastor_n comfort_n also_o be_v give_v they_o by_o name_n to_o the_o same_o purpose_n that_o the_o former_a be_v but_o in_o a_o divers_a respect_n for_o there_o be_v two_o thing_n which_o be_v wont_a to_o kindle_v the_o desire_n unto_o every_o excellent_a act_n hope_v of_o reward_n and_o contemn_v of_o the_o peril_n that_o first_o be_v propose_v to_o the_o postour_n who_o courage_n be_v wont_a to_o be_v more_o ready_a and_o valiant_a by_o look_v into_o the_o reward_n this_o second_o to_o the_o people_n who_o the_o fear_n of_o danger_n chief_o withdraw_v from_o their_o duty_n &_o suffer_v they_o not_o to_o undertake_v any_o thing_n worthy_a commendation_n he_o teach_v therefore_o that_o they_o must_v not_o fear_v to_o spend_v their_o life_n if_o need_v be_v for_o the_o truth_n sake_n for_o there_o shall_v be_v no_o fear_n of_o the_o second_o death_n by_o which_o the_o body_n and_o soul_n perish_v for_o ever_o according_a to_o that_o of_o christ_n fear_v not_o they_o that_o kill_v the_o body_n but_o can_v kill_v the_o soul_n but_o fear_v he_o rather_o who_o can_v destroy_v both_o soul_n and_o body_n in_o hell_n fire_n mat._n 10.28_o this_o in_o hell_n fire_n be_v this_o same_o which_o he_o call_v second_o death_n by_o the_o which_o the_o whole_a man_n shall_v be_v no_o less_o deprive_v of_o all_o solace_n in_o god_n as_o the_o body_n be_v destitute_a of_o all_o help_n be_v separate_v from_o the_o soul_n by_o the_o first_o death_n this_o be_v that_o horrible_a death_n to_o be_v fear_v in_o deed_n from_o which_o he_o that_o have_v overcome_v death_n do_v deliver_v he_o from_o which_o he_o
unskilful_a multitude_n or_o of_o the_o base_a people_n and_o that_o he_o may_v either_o be_v present_a or_o absent_a at_o his_o pleasure_n but_o let_v he_o behold_v here_o king_n attend_v to_o the_o voice_n of_o the_o beast_n nor_o that_o once_o or_o twice_o and_o at_o certain_a time_n but_o whensoever_o the_o beast_n give_v glory_n that_o be_v as_o often_o as_o they_o do_v execute_v their_o public_a office_n the_o praise_v of_o god_n of_o these_o and_o their_o adoration_n of_o god_n be_v join_v always_o together_o so_o that_o neither_o may_v any_o think_v that_o he_o be_v free_a and_o discharge_v from_o his_o duty_n neither_o to_o have_v perform_v it_o enough_o at_o some_o few_o time_n 11_o thou_o be_v worthy_a o_o lord_n the_o praise_v which_o the_o elder_n use_v in_o word_n be_v no_o other_o thing_n then_o a_o subscribe_v to_o the_o cry_v out_o and_o shout_n of_o the_o beast_n these_o celebrate_v the_o holiness_n dominion_n omnipotency_n and_o truth_n of_o god_n the_o elder_n now_o do_v singe_v together_o thou_o be_v worthy_a indeed_o o_o lord_n to_o receive_v glory_n and_o honour_n which_o we_o and_o all_o thy_o creature_n worthy_o do_v give_v to_o thou_o as_o though_o unto_o the_o sing_v of_o praise_n of_o the_o minister_n the_o people_n shall_v give_v their_o consent_n say_v amen_n but_o how_o may_v god_n receive_v power_n they_o mean_v the_o praise_n of_o all_o virtue_n and_o power_n power_n can_v not_o be_v give_v to_o god_n otherwise_o but_o only_o by_o acknowledge_v and_o praise_v which_o then_o shine_v forth_o most_o clear_o when_o he_o show_v his_o strength_n extraordinary_o both_o in_o deliver_v his_o own_o and_o also_o in_o destroy_v his_o enemy_n ¶_o for_o thou_o have_v create_v all_o thing_n the_o people_n ought_v not_o only_o to_o consent_v to_o the_o thanks_n give_v by_o the_o minister_n in_o the_o mean_a time_n themselves_o be_v void_a of_o all_o knowledge_n of_o their_o own_o as_o it_o come_v to_o pass_v in_o the_o papacy_n where_o after_o the_o prayer_n not_o understand_v be_v sing_v amen_o by_o the_o unskilful_a common_a people_n or_o some_o as_o they_o will_v supply_v their_o place_n but_o their_o consent_n ought_v to_o come_v from_o a_o true_a faith_n and_o that_o not_o confuse_v and_o implicit_a but_o of_o which_o a_o true_a sense_n and_o feeling_n be_v settle_v in_o every_o on_o his_o heart_n peculiar_o for_o the_o god_n of_o reason_n require_v a_o reasonable_a worship_n not_o unknown_a rash_a and_o void_a of_o counsel_n whereupon_o not_o without_o cause_n be_v add_v from_o what_o fountain_n the_o declaration_n of_o the_o consent_n of_o the_o elder_n to_o wit_n from_o their_o own_o acknowledge_v of_o the_o exceed_a power_n of_o god_n both_o in_o create_v all_o thing_n and_o also_o in_o preserve_v the_o same_o and_o no_o less_o from_o the_o sense_n of_o his_o most_o free_a good_a will_n by_o which_o alone_o be_v move_v he_o make_v all_o thing_n in_o the_o beginning_n and_o govern_v and_o preserve_v the_o same_o at_o this_o day_n according_a to_o that_o say_n who_o work_v all_o thing_n after_o the_o counsel_n of_o his_o will_n ephe._n chap._n 1._o ver_fw-la 11._o for_o which_o cause_n there_o be_v repeat_v in_o the_o end_n of_o the_o verse_n they_o have_v be_v create_v that_o we_o may_v understande_v that_o the_o will_n of_o god_n not_o only_o have_v rule_v in_o govern_v thing_n at_o this_o time_n but_o also_o that_o it_o give_v the_o first_o original_n to_o the_o same_o and_o so_o be_v the_o pattern_n of_o the_o christian_a church_n so_o much_o the_o more_o famous_a than_o that_o of_o the_o law_n by_o how_o much_o heaven_n in_o which_o john_n see_v this_o figure_n be_v more_o excellent_a than_o the_o mountain_n where_o moses_n see_v the_o tabernacle_n there_o be_v the_o same_o end_n and_o purpose_n of_o both_o of_o this_o that_o it_o may_v be_v a_o pattern_n of_o the_o worship_n to_o the_o legal_a people_n which_o shall_v hold_v even_o to_o the_o time_n of_o reformation_n of_o that_o that_o it_o may_v be_v a_o type_n unto_o christian_n according_a to_o what_o square_n they_o shall_v frame_v all_o their_o assembly_n both_o general_o and_o special_o grant_v o_o most_o high_a god_n that_o we_o may_v be_v find_v as_o faithful_a in_o bring_v back_o all_o thing_n unto_o the_o heavenly_a pattern_n as_o moses_n be_v unto_o that_o earthly_a chap._n 5._o after_o i_o see_v in_o the_o right_a hand_n of_o he_o that_o sit_v upon_o the_o throne_n a_o book_n write_v within_o and_o on_o the_o back_n side_n seal_v with_o seven_o seal_n 2_o and_o i_o see_v a_o strong_a angel_n preach_v with_o a_o loud_a voice_n who_o be_v worthy_a to_o open_v the_o book_n and_o loose_v the_o seal_v thereof_o 3_o and_o no_o man_n be_v able_a neither_o in_o heaven_n nor_o in_o earth_n nor_o under_o the_o earth_n to_o open_v the_o book_n nor_o to_o look_v thereon_o 4_o therefore_o i_o weep_v much_o because_o none_o be_v find_v worthy_a to_o open_v and_o read_v the_o book_n neither_o to_o look_v thereon_o 5_o then_o one_o of_o the_o elder_n say_v unto_o i_o weep_v not_o behold_v that_o lion_n of_o the_o tribe_n of_o juda_n that_o root_n of_o david_n have_v obtain_v to_o open_v the_o book_n and_o to_o loose_v the_o seven_o seal_n thereof_o 6_o then_o i_o behold_v and_o lo_o between_o the_o throne_n and_o those_o beast_n and_o between_o those_o elder_n a_o lamb_n stand_v as_o though_o he_o have_v be_v kill_v have_v seven_o horn_n &_o seven_o eye_n which_o be_v those_o seven_o spirit_n of_o god_n send_v forth_o into_o all_o the_o world_n 7_o he_o come_v and_o take_v the_o book_n out_o of_o the_o right_a hand_n of_o he_o that_o sit_v upon_o the_o throne_n 8_o and_o when_o he_o have_v take_v the_o book_n those_o four_o beast_n and_o those_o four_o and_o twenty_o elder_n fall_v down_o before_o the_o lamb_n have_v every_o one_o harp_n and_o golden_a vial_n full_a of_o odour_n which_o be_v the_o prayer_n of_o the_o saint_n 9_o and_o they_o sing_v a_o new_a song_n say_v thou_o be_v worthy_a to_o take_v the_o book_n and_o to_o open_v the_o seal_v thereof_o because_o thou_o be_v kill_v and_o have_v redeem_v we_o to_o god_n by_o thy_o blood_n out_o of_o every_o kindred_n and_o tongue_n and_o people_n and_o nation_n 10_o and_o haste_v make_v we_o to_o our_o god_n king_n and_o priest_n and_o we_o shall_v reign_v on_o the_o earth_n 11_o then_o i_o behold_v and_o i_o hear_v round_o about_o the_o throne_n and_o of_o the_o beast_n and_o elder_n the_o voice_n of_o many_o angel_n and_o the_o number_n of_o they_o be_v a_o thousand_o hundred_o thousand_o and_o ten_o hundred_o thousand_o 12_o say_v with_o a_o loud_a voice_n worthy_a be_v that_o lamb_n that_o be_v kill_v to_o receive_v power_n and_o riches_n and_o wisdom_n and_o strength_n and_o honour_n and_o glory_n and_o blessing_n 13_o and_o every_o creature_n which_o be_v in_o heaven_n and_o which_o be_v on_o the_o earth_n in_o the_o sea_n and_o all_o thing_n that_o be_v in_o they_o i_o hear_v say_v unto_o he_o that_o sit_v on_o the_o throne_n and_o to_o the_o lamb_n be_v praise_n and_o honour_n and_o glory_n and_o power_n for_o ever_o more_o 14_o and_o those_o four_o beast_n say_v amen_n and_o those_o four_o and_o twenty_o elder_n fall_v down_o on_o their_o face_n and_o worship_v he_o that_o live_v for_o ever_o more_o the_o analysis_n i_o have_v speak_v summary_o of_o the_o common_a type_n the_o special_a prophecy_n comprehend_v both_o the_o excellent_a dignity_n of_o this_o revelation_n in_o this_o chapter_n and_o also_o the_o event_n themselves_o in_o the_o rest_n of_o the_o book_n that_o thing_n be_v declare_v first_o in_o respect_n of_o the_o creature_n second_o of_o the_o lamb_n in_o respect_n of_o the_o creature_n it_o be_v altogether_o unsearchable_a as_o appear_v partly_o from_o the_o sign_v of_o seven_o seal_n ver_fw-la 1_o partly_o from_o the_o testimony_n of_o all_o creature_n which_o after_o the_o inquiry_n proclaim_v and_o the_o thing_n be_v cause_v to_o be_v cry_v by_o the_o voice_n of_o the_o angel_n as_o it_o be_v of_o a_o common_a crier_n ver_fw-la 2._o then_o also_o after_o trial_n make_v at_o last_o ver_fw-la 3._o all_o do_v acknowledge_v their_o own_o unablenes_n of_o which_o last_o there_o be_v a_o sorrowful_a consequente_a the_o weep_a of_o john_n which_o this_o imbecility_n and_o despair_n to_o enjoy_v so_o excellent_a a_o good_a thing_n do_v wring_v out_o from_o he_o ver_fw-la 4._o in_o respect_n of_o the_o lamb_n only_o it_o be_v able_a to_o be_v search_v out_o as_o first_o a_o elder_a show_v who_o confort_v john_n ver_fw-la 5._o second_o the_o lamb_n come_v at_o the_o same_o instant_n and_o take_v the_o book_n ver_fw-la 6.7_o from_o whence_o at_o length_n arise_v the_o
be_v 12_o and_o i_o behold_v when_o he_o have_v open_v the_o sixth_o seal_n and_o lo_o there_o be_v make_v a_o great_a earthquake_n &_o the_o sun_n become_v black_a as_o sack_v cloth_n of_o hair_n &_o the_o moon_n be_v like_o blood_n 13_o and_o the_o star_n of_o heaven_n fall_v to_o the_o earth_n as_o a_o fig_n tree_n cast_v her_o green_a fig_n when_o it_o be_v shake_v of_o a_o mighty_a wind_n 14._o and_o heaven_n depart_v away_o as_o a_o scroll_n when_o it_o be_v roll_v &_o every_o mountain_n &_o isle_n be_v move_v out_o of_o their_o place_n 15_o and_o the_o king_n of_o the_o earth_n &_o the_o peer_n &_o the_o rich_a man_n &_o the_o tribune_n &_o the_o mighty_a man_n &_o every_o bondman_n &_o every_o free_a man_n hide_v themselves_o in_o den_n &_o among_o the_o rock_n of_o the_o mountain_n 16_o and_o say_v to_o the_o mountain_n and_o rock_n fall_v upon_o we_o and_o hide_v we_o from_o the_o presence_n of_o he_o that_o sit_v on_o the_o throne_n and_o from_o the_o wrath_n of_o the_o lamb_n 17._o for_o the_o great_a day_n of_o his_o wrath_n be_v come_v and_o who_o can_v stand_v the_o analysis_n such_o be_v the_o excellency_n of_o this_o revelation_n the_o event_n do_v follow_v which_o first_o be_v the_o seal_n second_o the_o trumpet_n last_o the_o vial_n for_o all_o the_o rest_n of_o the_o prophecy_n be_v distinguish_v into_o three_o notable_a periode●_n which_o contain_v the_o chief_a alteration_n to_o come_v in_o the_o world_n even_o unto_o the_o come_n of_o christ_n every_o one_o of_o which_o again_o be_v divide_v into_o seven_o point_n so_o as_o from_o the_o last_o of_o the_o former_a arise_v always_o the_o whole_a sequent_a period_n as_o touch_v the_o scale_n there_o be_v in_o every_o one_o a_o certain_a preparation_n afterward_o the_o type_n of_o the_o future_a thing_n and_o the_o preparation_n be_v partly_o common_a whereby_o the_o lamb_n open_v each_o one_o in_o order_n partly_o proper_a to_o the_o four_o first_o which_o beside_o have_v a_o invite_v by_o one_o of_o the_o four_o beast_n to_o come_v and_o see_v there_o be_v six_o type_n of_o this_o chapter_n for_o so_o many_o seal_n be_v open_v a_o white_a horse_n ver_fw-la 2._o a_o read_v ver_fw-la 4._o a_o black_a ver_fw-la 5._o a_o pale_a ver_fw-la 8._o the_o cry_n of_o the_o soul_n for_o 9.10.11_o and_o great_a earthquake_n to_o the_o end_n of_o the_o chapter_n analysis_n after_o i_o behold_v when_o the_o lamb_n have_v open_v the_o first_o of_o the_o seal_n now_o the_o spirit_n enter_v into_o the_o event_n which_o will_v instruct_v we_o touch_v all_o the_o change_n succeed_a by_o course_n in_o the_o world_n as_o far_o as_o be_v expedient_a for_o the_o church_n and_o which_o be_v of_o any_o moment_n unto_o the_o last_o end_n of_o all_o thing_n a_o great_a matter_n and_o chief_o necessary_a to_o be_v know_v but_o such_o as_o into_o which_o no_o understanding_n of_o mortal_a man_n can_v penetrate_v therefore_o who_o in_o the_o beginning_n i_o have_v pray_v unto_o he_o do_v i_o call_v upon_o again_o have_v go_v forward_o in_o some_o part_n by_o his_o alone_a grace_n that_o he_o will_v grant_v i_o happy_o to_o make_v a_o end_n of_o the_o thing_n that_o remain_v who_o have_v grant_v i_o so_o to_o begin_v as_o i_o be_o persuade_v be_v agree_v with_o his_o truth_n thou_o therefore_o most_o holy_a and_o most_o wise_a lamb_n who_o alone_o have_v deserve_v to_o take_v &_o unscale_v the_o book_n and_o not_o to_o that_o end_n that_o thou_o shall_v have_v these_o secret_n for_o thyself_o alone_o but_o that_o thou_o shall_v communicate_v they_o with_o thy_o church_n as_o far_o as_o shall_v be_v for_o her_o profit_n grant_v i_o pray_v thou_o unto_o i_o thy_o most_o unworthy_a servant_n according_a to_o thy_o bounteousness_n that_o perceave_v clear_o what_o hide_v and_o secret_a thing_n these_o seal_n contain_v i_o may_v reveal_v the_o same_o holy_o unto_o the_o world_n to_o the_o edification_n of_o thy_o church_n the_o ruin_n of_o antichrist_n and_o the_o glory_n of_o thy_o own_o name_n to_o be_v publish_v unto_o all_o age_n amen_n in_o that_o we_o have_v distinguish_v the_o event_n into_o three_o rank_n we_o have_v the_o spirit_n himself_o for_o our_o author_n join_v the_o trumpet_n to_o the_o seal_n &_o the_o vial_n to_o the_o trumpet_n in_o such_o sort_n as_o that_o always_o the_o first_o thing_n of_o that_o which_o follow_v do_v arise_v out_o of_o the_o last_o of_o that_o which_o go_v before_o therefore_o they_o bring_v in_o darkness_n upon_o themselves_o who_o do_v thrust_v together_o into_o one_o the_o seal_n the_o trumpet_n the_o vial_n and_o also_o the_o seven_o candlestick_n so_o as_o each_o one_o of_o every_o order_n shall_v be_v join_v one_o to_o another_o in_o equal_a degree_n as_o if_o the_o father_n &_o the_o son_n shall_v be_v equal_a &_o shall_v run_v together_o the_o same_o term_n of_o year_n furthermore_o see_v the_o seal_n be_v as_o it_o be_v promise_n of_o future_a thing_n the_o trumpet_n adversity_n approach_v with_o great_a noise_n the_o vial_n thing_n that_o be_v pour_v upon_o man_n by_o little_a and_o little_a and_o come_v upon_o they_o unwarre_n as_o we_o shall_v after_o see_v &_o overwhelm_v they_o it_o seem_v not_o to_o be_v convenient_a to_o confound_v these_o contrary_a thing_n together_o so_o that_o the_o thing_n shall_v be_v promise_v and_o accomplish_v all_o at_o once_o and_o that_o the_o same_o thing_n shall_v be_v do_v open_o and_o secret_o at_o the_o same_o moment_n of_o time_n but_o let_v we_o come_v to_o the_o word_n ¶_o when_o he_o have_v open_v say_v he_o one_o seal_n that_o be_v to_o say_v the_o first_o as_o theod._n beza_n translate_v it_o for_o after_o follow_v the_o second_o three_o etc._n etc._n and_o so_o the_o hebrew_n every_o where_o use_v to_o speak_v but_o before_o i_o proceed_v to_o the_o thing_n that_o be_v behind_o that_o cold_a comment_n of_o the_o jesuit_n be_v to_o be_v remove_v who_o think_v that_o the_o open_n of_o the_o book_n be_v something_o diverse_a from_o open_v of_o the_o seal_n as_o though_o nothing_o in_o the_o book_n can_v be_v read_v and_o show_v unto_o we_o before_o that_o all_o the_o seal_n shall_v be_v open_v which_o opinion_n very_o feign_v unto_o we_o i_o know_v not_o what_o book_n of_o which_o we_o have_v receive_v never_o a_o word_n write_v neither_o do_v we_o understand_v from_o thence_o aught_o touch_v thing_n to_o come_v for_o the_o revelation_n have_v nothing_o more_o beside_o the_o open_a seal_n for_o out_o of_o they_o the_o trumpet_n come_v forth_o and_o again_o out_o of_o they_o the_o vial_n as_o we_o have_v advertise_v in_o the_o resolution_n so_o as_o all_o the_o rest_n of_o the_o prophecy_n be_v limit_v with_o those_o thing_n that_o be_v contain_v in_o the_o seal_n as_o we_o shall_v prove_v by_o manifest_a argument_n in_o their_o place_n if_o therefore_o after_o all_o the_o seal_n open_v he_o have_v find_v out_o some_o book_n to_o be_v read_v it_o be_v apocryphe_n that_o be_v a_o hide_a book_n the_o original_n and_o authority_n whereof_o be_v not_o know_v &_o which_o peradventure_o may_v lie_v hide_v in_o the_o coffer_n of_o the_o breast_n of_o their_o pope_n but_o which_o to_o read_v and_o know_v the_o church_n have_v nothing_o to_o do_v furthermore_o it_o be_v needful_a for_o the_o clear_a understanding_n of_o the_o periode_n first_o the_o term_n of_o time_n wherein_o thing_n be_v finish_v and_o every_o several_a article_n of_o they_o to_o set_v down_o some_o entrance_n from_o whence_o we_o must_v begin_v which_o sure_o we_o judge_v to_o be_v by_o and_o by_o after_o this_o write_n of_o john_n for_o that_o say_n of_o the_o four_o chapter_n ver_fw-la 1._o i_o will_v show_v thou_o the_o thing_n that_o must_v be_v do_v hereafter_o call_v back_o john_n both_o to_o that_o moment_n of_o the_o revelation_n give_v &_o also_o teach_v to_o count_v from_o thence_o all_o thing_n which_o be_v deliver_v in_o the_o book_n follow_v therefore_o there_o be_v no_o need_n to_o have_v recourse_n unto_o the_o first_o age_n of_o the_o world_n nor_o unto_o the_o monarchy_n nor_o unto_o the_o time_n of_o christ_n or_o the_o evangelist_n or_o in_o any_o such_o thing_n of_o the_o age_n past_a but_o john_n write_v this_o revelation_n by_o the_o commandment_n of_o god_n about_o the_o end_n of_o the_o empire_n of_o domitian_n as_o ireneus_fw-la show_v in_o his_o 5_o book_n against_o heresy_n &_o eusebius_n out_o of_o ireneus_fw-la in_o the_o 3_o book_n of_o his_o ecclesiastical_a history_n chap._n 18._o at_o the_o end_n of_o the_o reign_n of_o domitian_n about_o the_o ninety_o seven_o year_n from_o the_o birth_n of_o christ_n we_o think_v the_o beginning_n of_o the_o seal_n to_o wit_n of_o
shall_v come_v to_o pass_v may_v be_v more_o famous_a a●●●●us_o his_o father_n govern_v the_o whole_a world_n by_o his_o sole_a authority_n no_o war_n be_v make_v for_o the_o space_n of_o three_o and_o twenty_o year_n sextus_n aurelius_n vul●r_n had●ianus_n also_o have_v peace_n the_o whole_a time_n of_o his_o empire_n except_o that_o once_o only_o he_o fight_v by_o his_o viceroy_n eutrop._n brev._n book_n 8._o be_v not_o the_o thing_n worthy_a observation_n that_o after_o the_o peace_n of_o 44._o year_n all_o place_n shall_v be_v sudden_o trouble_v with_o the_o burn_a flame_n of_o war_n every_o man_n see_v that_o there_o be_v so_o great_a agreement_n of_o all_o thing_n namely_o of_o the_o prophecy_n time_n and_o event_n that_o it_o can_v be_v doubtful_a but_o that_o the_o spirit_n point_v as_o it_o be_v with_o the_o finger_n to_o this_o only_a thing_n tertul._n in_o his_o apol._n that_o a_o notable_a peace_n be_v grant_v at_o length_n to_o the_o christian_o by_o this_o emperor_n decree_n but_o this_o come_v to_o pass_v after_o the_o war_n of_o the_o marcomanes_n in_o which_o have_v try_v the_o singular_a help_n of_o god_n against_o the_o enemy_n by_o the_o prayer_n of_o the_o christian_n who_o be_v soldier_n in_o his_o army_n he_o can_v not_o but_o provide_v at_o length_n for_o their_o safety_n who_o have_v bring_v health_n both_o to_o himself_o and_o also_o to_o his_o empire_n and_o yet_o he_o live_v not_o long_o after_o this_o war_n the_o next_o year_n after_o the_o triumph_n depart_v this_o life_n 5_o and_o when_o he_o have_v open_v the_o three_o seal_n etc._n etc._n the_o beast_n of_o the_o three_o seal_n be_v a_o man_n chap._n 4.7_o mighty_a in_o reason_n &_o experience_n of_o thing_n not_o but_o that_o the_o former_a beast_n be_v of_o this_o same_o force_n also_o and_o power_n but_o because_o this_o shall_v be_v the_o chief_a thing_n wherein_o the_o three_o beast_n shall_v excel_v the_o voice_n also_o of_o this_o be_v more_o obscure_a than_o be_v that_o of_o the_o first_o which_o yet_o shall_v be_v sufficient_a to_o teach_v the_o faithful_a what_o punishment_n god_n will_v take_v of_o the_o world_n for_o their_o sake_n ¶_o t●●●_n i_o beh●ld_v use_v lo●_n a_o bla●ke_a horse_n the_o three_o type_n be_v a_o black_a horse_n the_o sitter_n on_o w●●●_n he_o ●●●th_o in_o ●i●_n ha●●●●●es_v be_v command_v to_o bring_v in_o a_o dearth_n al●●_n 〈◊〉_d the_o b●●●s_n yet_o so_o as_o he_o shall_v not_o hurt_v wine_n and_o oil_n therefore_o as_o ●oa●●ng_v this_o ●orse_o the_o bl●●●olour_n sit_o agree_v to_o the_o hunger_n starven_v who_o 〈◊〉_d a_o body_n without_o blood_n without_o ivyce_n &_o without_o colour_n as_o jer._n lam._n 〈…〉_o pure_a th●●●o●●ow_o be_v their_o bewry_n become_v more_o dark_a than_o 〈…〉_o 8._o also_o through_o hunger_n the_o eye_n be_v dim_a &_o cover_v with_o da●●●●_n 〈…〉_o eye_n receded_a light_n when_o he_o have_v put_v his_o hand_n to_o his_o mouth_n 1_o s●●_n ●●_o 28_o 〈…〉_o which_o the_o s●●ter_n have_v in_o his_o hand_n be_v call_v 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d w●●_n 〈…〉_o to_o wit_n the_o beam_n of_o the_o balance_n on_o which_o the_o s●oles_n do_v hang_fw-mi 〈…〉_o the_o whole_n a_o s●●_n instrument_n for_o famine_n see_v 〈…〉_o as_o weigh_v 6_o a●d_n i_o 〈…〉_o th●s_n u●●●●_n be_v the_o 〈◊〉_d be_v in_o the_o mid_n of_o the_o beast_n ch_z 5_o 6_o 〈…〉_o uni●●s●ll_o administration_n of_o thing_n be_v 〈…〉_o b●t_o se●●ng_v this_o voice_n be_v ●●●●d_v among_o the_o bea●●_n neither_o as_o 〈◊〉_d go●●_n out_o from_o 〈…〉_o ●lace_n by_o the_o same_o be_v signify_v th●●_n the_o very_a 〈…〉_o but_o yet_o which_o alone_o shall_v know_v the_o co●●ll_o 〈…〉_o ¶_o a_o measure_n of_o whe●●_n etc._n etc._n the_o inter●●●_n 〈…〉_o he_o ●●●en_a quantity_n of_o this_o measure_n some_o give_v to_o it_o 3_o 〈…〉_o 8._o ●●esichius_n 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d be_v as_o it_o be_v ●ood_a divide_v which_o in_o one_o word_n 〈◊〉_d call_v common_o dimension_n a_o s●●_n m●●●●re_o of_o corn_n atheneus_n speak_v ●ore_o d●●inctly_o of_o it_o in_o his_o 3_o book_n d●●opsi_n show_v for_o how_o long_o a_o t●me_n this_o allowance_n be_v call_v it_o the_o sustenance_n for_o one_o day_n aristophanes_n in_o 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d br_v somewhat_o a_o more_o full_a light_n where_o 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d twit_v the_o servant_n say_v who_o i_o have_v teach_v to_o fashion_v four_o loaf_n of_o bread_n to_o a_o choenix_n to_o wit_n a_o measure_n of_o corn_n therefore_o chocnix_n contain_v so_o much_o corn_n as_o will_v suffice_v to_o make_v four_o loaf_n the_o scholiast_n add_v that_o four_o great_a loaf_n be_v make_v of_o a_o choenix_n and_o 8_o small_a one_o 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d signify_v corn_n in_o general_a in_o this_o place_n wheat_n or_o meal_n of_o wheat_n a_o dear_a provision_n than_o barley_n three_o measure_n of_o which_o be_v not_o sell_v for_o more_o than_o one_o of_o wheat_n for_o a_o penny_n understand_v shall_v be_v fold_n or_o some_o like_a word_n denarius_fw-la be_v a_o latin_a word_n be_v worth_a ten_o piece_n of_o silver_n the_o ancient_a writer_n make_v it_o equal_a in_o weight_n &_o value_n to_o the_o attic_a drachma_n that_o be_v seven_o penny_n it_o be_v of_o three_o kind_n as_o some_o will_v have_v it_o one_o of_o which_o be_v worth_a after_o our_o account_v seven_o penny_n a_o other_o eight_o a_o other_o ten_o and_o thus_o much_o of_o the_o corn_n as_o touch_v the_o other_o sustenance_n he_o say_v and_o oil_n and_o wine_n hurt_v not_o the_o latin_a translation_n read_v the_o word_n be_v displace_v thus_o and_o wine_n &_o oil_n hurt_v not_o the_o meaning_n be_v yet_o wine_n and_o oil_n hurt_v not_o after_o the_o manner_n of_o the_o hebrew_n the_o copulative_a be_v put_v discretive_o the_o word_n wine_n &_o oil_n can_v be_v refer_v unto_o those_o that_o go_v before_o as_o though_o he_o shall_v say_v a_o measure_n of_o wheat_n shall_v be_v sell_v for_o a_o penny_n and_o three_o measure_n of_o barley_n for_o a_o penny_n likewise_o wine_n and_o oil_n for_o a_o penny_n junius_n on_o this_o place_n thou_o shall_v not_o do_v unjust_o for_o the_o word_n oil_n &_o wine_n be_v the_o accusative_a case_n of_o the_o follow_a word_n thou_o shall_v not_o hurt_v and_o not_o the_o nominative_a go_v before_o the_o verb_n as_o the_o word_n measure_n and_o measure_n be_v wherefore_o all_o succour_n for_o life_n shall_v not_o be_v take_v away_o but_o only_o necessary_a thing_n shall_v be_v diminish_v oil_n and_o wine_n which_o serve_v for_o delicious_a dainty_n shall_v be_v leave_v unhurt_a because_o it_o have_v seem_v good_a to_o god_n to_o punish_v the_o poor_a sort_n first_o the_o prince_n and_o state_n be_v reserve_v as_o dainty_n from_o famine_n to_o the_o pestilence_n for_o who_o the_o famine_n can_v not_o consume_v because_o of_o their_o riches_n and_o abundance_n those_o the_o pestilence_n shall_v eat_v up_o and_o shall_v kill_v with_o a_o speedy_a death_n as_o in_o the_o seal_n follow_v so_o be_v the_o word_n the_o event_n be_v not_o so_o plain_o mention_v of_o the_o history-writer_n as_o be_v to_o be_v wish_v who_o do_v gather_v only_o the_o more_o notable_a thing_n and_o do_v easy_o pass_v over_o for_o the_o most_o part_n thing_n vulgar_a and_o common_a especial_o when_o as_o this_o famine_n consist_v only_o in_o the_o scarcity_n of_o corn_n &_o not_o in_o a_o dearth_n of_o all_o victual_n yet_o god_n will_v have_v some_o token_n of_o it_o to_o be_v apparent_a as_o far_o as_o may_v suffice_v to_o set_v out_o of_o danger_n the_o truth_n of_o the_o prophecy_n commodus_n the_o son_n of_o antoninus_n do_v succeed_v his_o father_n who_o be_v emperor_n there_o be_v give_v by_o the_o mercy_n of_o god_n some_o breathe_n i_o think_v because_o from_o the_o emperor_n himself_o alone_o man_n kind_n shall_v have_v plague_n and_o pestilence_n enough_o pertinax_n &_o julian_n follow_v both_o of_o a_o short_a reign_n and_o therefore_o less_o hurtful_a at_o length_n severus_n enjoy_v the_o dominion_n a_o cruel_a author_n of_o a_o most_o grievous_a butchery_n whether_o of_o his_o own_o accord_n or_o by_o the_o instigation_n of_o other_o man_n then_o the_o three_o beast_n cry_v out_o admonish_v the_o faithful_a that_o god_n will_v punish_v the_o wicked_a loathe_n spiritual_a food_n with_o a_o great_a penury_n of_o the_o sustenance_n of_o this_o life_n for_o tertullian_n who_o by_o right_n thou_o may_v call_v a_o man_n excel_v in_o wit_n in_o good_a judgement_n and_o in_o learning_n who_o have_v almost_o as_o many_o argument_n as_o word_n who_o through_o anger_n fall_v away_o unto_o the_o heresy_n of_o montanus_n by_o his_o infirmity_n also_o show_v that_o nothing_o pertain_v to_o a_o man_n be_v alienate_v from_o he_o this_o
and_o in_o deed_n it_o may_v easy_o be_v understand_v that_o the_o time_n be_v not_o far_o of_o when_o a_o end_n shall_v be_v put_v unto_o public_a murder_n see_v all_o degree_n of_o man_n do_v incline_v with_o so_o great_a gentleness_n to_o the_o truth_n but_o this_o seal_n have_v both_o some_o thing_n proper_a in_o the_o rest_n of_o this_o chapter_n and_o also_o common_a in_o chap._n 7._o that_o be_v the_o last_o trial_n of_o the_o seal_n the_o first_o part_n of_o which_o contain_v the_o go_v on_o of_o the_o sorrowful_a tragedy_n and_o all_o the_o former_a calamity_n ver_fw-la 12.13.14_o the_o second_o the_o joyful_a isue_n in_o subdue_a the_o enemy_n and_o appease_v all_o hurliburly_n ver_fw-la 15.16.17_o as_o touch_v that_o aretas_n report_v from_o the_o monument_n of_o andreas_n that_o very_o many_o say_v that_o this_o earthquake_n be_v a_o passage_n from_o the_o persecution_n which_o be_v bring_v upon_o they_o for_o christ_n his_o sake_n unto_o the_o time_n of_o antichrist_n and_o so_o the_o scripture_n be_v wont_a to_o call_v some_o notable_a alteration_n a_o earthquake_n as_o where_o it_o be_v say_v yet_o once_o more_o i_o will_v shake_v the_o earth_n heb._n 12.26_o it_o signifi_v the_o remove_v of_o those_o thing_n that_o be_v shake_v as_o saint_n paul_n declare_v and_o in_o the_o old_a testament_n the_o go_v of_o the_o child_n of_o jsraell_n out_o of_o egypt_n be_v call_v a_o earthquake_n as_o psal_n 68.9_o the_o earth_n be_v move_v and_o the_o heaven_n drop_v at_o the_o presence_n of_o god_n those_o interpreter_n have_v touch_v the_o point_n according_a to_o the_o truth_n but_o only_o they_o do_v miss_v in_o this_o that_o live_v under_o antichrist_n they_o expect_v he_o yet_o to_o come_v not_o know_v that_o he_o be_v come_v long_o a_o go_v which_o error_n of_o the_o ancient_a father_n as_o who_o be_v further_o of_o from_o the_o last_o event_n be_v less_o able_a to_o perceive_v the_o matter_n itself_o the_o papist_n snatch_v to_o themselves_o greedy_o and_o here_o they_o make_v a_o very_a great_a gape_a and_o distance_n of_o time_n leap_v over_o from_o the_o time_n of_o traiane_n in_o which_o they_o conclude_v the_o former_a seal_n unto_o the_o last_o end_n of_o the_o world_n which_o they_o reserve_v to_o their_o antichrist_n as_o though_o by_o this_o earthquake_n all_o judgement_n of_o that_o which_o be_v right_o have_v fall_v unto_o they_o but_o whether_o be_v it_o likely_a that_o a_o whole_a thousand_o and_o five_o hundred_o year_n and_o yet_o to_o come_v we_o know_v not_o how_o many_o more_o have_v be_v pass_v over_o with_o silence_n and_o that_o all_o the_o rest_n of_o the_o prophecy_n be_v stuff_v together_o into_o the_o narrow_a strait_n of_o 3._o year_n and_o a_o half_a as_o frances_n of_o ribera_n the_o jesuit_n will_v have_v it_o it_o be_v indeed_o a_o profitable_a abridgement_n and_o a_o short_a way_n to_o set_v free_a his_o lord_n the_o pope_n from_o a_o very_a great_a fear_n for_o it_o can_v not_o be_v but_o as_o often_o as_o he_o shall_v behold_v his_o face_n in_o this_o glass_n he_o will_v seem_v to_o himself_o to_o be_v antichrist_n unless_o the_o jesuite_n now_o do_v make_v it_o apparent_a that_o all_o that_o be_v but_o a_o phantasm_n which_o make_v he_o afraid_a that_o nothing_o be_v here_o speak_v of_o the_o present_a time_n neither_o of_o that_o which_o be_v pass_v through_o many_o age_n but_o that_o all_o the_o speech_n follow_v be_v of_o the_o time_n yet_o to_o come_v but_o we_o will_v put_v away_o this_o smoke_n &_o mist_n through_o god_n his_o help_n neither_o will_v we_o suffer_v that_o the_o pope_n seem_v to_o himself_o a_o triksy_a fellow_n shall_v love_v himself_o to_o destruction_n &_o also_o will_v make_v plain_a that_o the_o jesuit_n do_v not_o interpret_v but_o moke_v the_o scripture_n ¶_o and_o the_o sun_n become_v black_a these_o figurative_a and_o hyperbolical_a speech_n do_v show_v that_o there_o shall_v be_v a_o persecution_n the_o most_o fierce_a of_o all_o those_o which_o the_o church_n endure_v at_o any_o time_n from_o christ_n birth_n till_o now_o for_o so_o the_o prophet_n be_v wont_a to_o speak_v when_o they_o point_n at_o any_o great_a calamity_n as_o isaiah_n he_o will_v clothe_v the_o heaven_n with_o blackness_n he_o will_v make_v their_o cover_n as_o a_o sack_n cloth_n chap._n 50.3_o and_o jeremy_n when_o i_o behold_v say_v he_o the_o heaven_n they_o have_v no_o light_n ch_z 4.23_o and_o the_o heaven_n above_o shall_v be_v black_a for_o 28._o but_o most_o plain_o in_o ezechiell_n speak_v of_o the_o overthrow_n of_o the_o egyptian_n when_o i_o shall_v put_v thou_o out_o i_o will_v cover_v the_o heaven_n and_o make_v the_o star_n thereof_o dark_a i_o will_v cover_v the_o sun_n with_o a_o cloud_n and_o the_o moon_n shall_v not_o make_v her_o light_n to_o shine_v all_o the_o clear_a light_n in_o the_o heaven_n i_o will_v make_v dark_a upon_o thou_o and_o bring_v darkness_n upon_o thy_o land_n say_v the_o lord_n ch_z 32.7.8_o many_o such_o place_n do_v teach_v that_o these_o speech_n be_v not_o to_o be_v reffer_v to_o the_o last_o judgement_n only_o as_o some_o do_v expound_v but_o also_o to_o other_o time_n which_o those_o ancient_n do_v see_v of_o who_o speak_v aretas_n even_o now_o who_o will_v have_v these_o thing_n to_o be_v understand_v of_o the_o pass_v over_o to_o antichrist_n this_o blackness_n of_o the_o sun_n &_o the_o other_o disturbance_n of_o the_o creature_n pertain_v to_o that_o horrible_a slaughter_n whereby_o those_o wicked_a man_n diocletian_a &_o maximinian_n endeavour_v to_o root_v out_o the_o church_n for_o we_o shall_v see_v that_o the_o sun_n &_o moon_n do_v note_v stable_o through_o this_o book_n the_o chief_a ornament_n of_o the_o congregation_n of_o the_o faithful_a so_o that_o the_o sun_n may_v signify_v the_o scripture_n the_o moon_n that_o excellent_a glory_n of_o godliness_n whereby_o the_o saint_n do_v shine_v after_o they_o have_v borrow_v light_n from_o they_o that_o both_o these_o shall_v be_v miserable_o defile_v by_o this_o common_a calamity_n this_o seal_n show_v it_o the_o accomplishment_n whereof_o be_v recite_v by_o eusebe_n book_n 8.2_o for_o when_o the_o emperor_n in_o the_o nineteenth_o year_n of_o their_o reign_n ordain_v by_o public_a decree_n that_o the_o book_n of_o the_o holy_a scripture_n shall_v be_v commit_v to_o the_o fire_n in_o the_o mid_n of_o the_o mark_v we_o see_v say_v eusebius_n with_o these_o very_a eye_n that_o the_o sacred_a scripture_n inspire_v of_o god_n be_v cast_v in_o to_o the_o fire_n in_o the_o mid_n of_o the_o market_n place_n and_o in_o the_o same_o place_n a_o little_a after_o the_o king_n letter_n patent_n do_v fly_v to_o &_o fro_o in_o every_o place_n whereby_o it_o be_v command_v to_o abolish_v the_o scripture_n so_o this_o sun_n as_o a_o sack_n cloth_n of_o hair_n note_v not_o only_o general_o that_o the_o public_a joy_n shall_v be_v turn_v into_o very_o great_a sorrow_n but_o also_o especial_o that_o outragiousnes_n whereby_o cruelty_n be_v exercise_v against_o the_o sacred_a scripture_n neither_o can_v it_o be_v otherwise_o but_o when_o the_o fountain_n of_o light_n be_v darken_v the_o moon_n which_o have_v her_o light_n only_o borrow_v shall_v fade_v away_o into_o the_o dark_a colour_n of_o blood_n as_o almost_o always_o it_o happen_v when_o she_o be_v keep_v from_o have_v society_n with_o the_o sun_n 13_o and_o the_o star_n from_o heaven_n fall_v to_o the_o earth_n the_o star_n be_v minister_n &_o pastor_n of_o the_o church_n chap._n 1.20_o in_o which_o signification_n they_o be_v use_v both_o here_o &_o in_o other_o place_n afterward_o many_o of_o they_o through_o fear_n shall_v revolt_n from_o the_o truth_n which_o be_v show_v by_o the_o fall_n from_o heaven_n to_o earth_n neither_o that_o only_a after_o many_o danger_n and_o divers_a calamity_n whereby_o be_v weaken_v they_o shall_v yield_v but_o in_o the_o very_a first_o assault_n they_o shall_v fall_v down_o as_o green_a fig_n that_o be_v with_o very_o little_a ado_n even_o at_o the_o first_o rumour_n of_o peril_n for_o the_o fig_n tree_n most_o easy_o lose_v her_o fruit_n before_o maturity_n neither_o tarry_v almost_o for_o the_o violence_n of_o storm_n but_o with_o any_o light_a blast_n of_o wind_n make_v a_o untymely_a birth_n that_o i_o may_v so_o say_v plin._n book_n 16.26_o of_o which_o thing_n the_o spirit_n make_v mention_v in_o so_o fine_a a_o similitude_n that_o the_o faithful_a be_v forwarn_v shall_v not_o be_v discourage_v with_o the_o so_o easy_a fall_v away_o of_o many_o eusebius_n show_v that_o the_o thing_n fall_v out_o altogether_o as_o it_o be_v here_o foreshow_v for_o after_o that_o first_o decree_n of_o demolish_n the_o temple_n &_o burn_v the_o scripture_n there_o be_v add_v a_o
trumpet_n the_o second_o time_n be_v of_o a_o infinite_a &_o innumerable_a multitude_n who_o citizen_n be_v describe_v partly_o by_o those_o thing_n which_o john_n himself_o can_v understand_v by_o himself_o to_o wit_n by_o the_o thing_n see_v whence_o they_o be_v where_o they_o stand_v and_o in_o what_o apparel_n for_o 9_o likewise_o by_o the_o glorify_v of_o god_n hear_v both_o of_o themselves_o for_o 10._o and_o also_o of_o the_o angel_n consent_v to_o the_o same_o ver_fw-la 11._o and_o more_o full_o praise_v god_n in_o their_o behalf_n ver_fw-la 12._o partly_o by_o the_o instruction_n of_o a_o elder_a whereunto_o a_o way_n be_v prepare_v by_o a_o question_n ver_fw-la 13._o &_o a_o confession_n of_o ignorance_n in_o the_o begin_n of_o the_o verse_n follow_v afterward_o a_o full_a doctrine_n be_v add_v which_o show_v that_o they_o come_v out_o of_o great_a affliction_n but_o that_o now_o they_o be_v bless_v through_o the_o imputation_n of_o the_o righteousness_n of_o the_o lamb_n ver_fw-la 14._o testify_v by_o their_o constant_a desire_n to_o serve_v god_n and_o of_o he_o again_o by_o his_o defence_n ver_fw-la 15._o then_o also_o by_o a_o eternal_a freedom_n from_o all_o evil_n for_o 16._o and_o last_o of_o all_o by_o the_o fruition_n of_o good_a thing_n ver_fw-la 17._o and_o this_o second_o time_n for_o the_o most_o part_n be_v of_o the_o viol_n scholion_n 1_o after_o i_o see_v four_o angel_n this_o whole_a chapter_n belong_v to_o the_o sixth_o seal_n wherein_o a_o new_a common_a type_n be_v set_v forth_o of_o thing_n that_o be_v to_o be_v do_v afterward_o the_o former_a be_v common_a to_o all_o the_o three_o period_n chap._n 4_o this_o contain_v only_o the_o two_o latter_a to_o wit_n the_o trumpet_n and_o viol_n for_o the_o spirit_n rejoice_v for_o perspicuity_n and_o consolation_n sake_n to_o set_v before_o our_o eye_n often_o time_n certain_a common_a figure_n both_o that_o the_o thing_n may_v be_v more_o apparent_a and_o also_o that_o the_o event_n behold_v a_o far_o of_o may_v recreate_v the_o mind_n be_v in_o heaviness_n but_o when_o after_o that_o isue_n of_o the_o former_a calamity_n which_o be_v speak_v of_o in_o the_o end_n of_o the_o former_a chapter_n the_o seven_o seal_n shall_v bring_v in_o divers_a sort_n of_o trouble_n before_o he_o come_v to_o declare_v they_o he_o set_v as_o it_o be_v this_o table_n in_o the_o sight_n of_o all_o man_n in_o which_o view_v the_o future_a image_n of_o the_o holy_a church_n we_o shall_v know_v assure_o that_o the_o same_o can_v in_o no_o wise_n be_v abolish_v and_o clean_o take_v away_o howsoever_o horrible_a tempest_n may_v seem_v to_o appear_v and_o cast_v down_o all_o thing_n to_o utter_v destruction_n this_o purpose_n of_o the_o holy_a ghost_n be_v consider_v will_v free_v we_o from_o the_o great_a confusion_n wherewith_o the_o interpreter_n be_v wont_a to_o shuffle_v together_o all_o thing_n and_o to_o cast_v upon_o the_o most_o wise_a distributour_n of_o the_o time_n a_o wrap_v &_o entangle_v which_o can_v be_v unfold_v which_o sure_o if_o ever_o elsewhere_o it_o be_v most_o of_o all_o shun_v in_o this_o book_n whereby_o it_o shall_v be_v make_v manifest_a that_o the_o spirit_n be_v not_o a_o lover_n of_o confusion_n but_o that_o he_o alone_o be_v the_o principal_a author_n of_o all_o right_a and_o prudent_a dispensation_n ¶_o four_o angel_n these_o be_v not_o the_o four_o angel_n of_o the_o last_o time_n which_o be_v yet_o to_o come_v a_o little_a before_o the_o end_n of_o the_o world_n for_o their_o endeavour_n in_o hold_v back_o the_o wind_n go_v a_o little_a before_o the_o seal_n as_o the_o next_o word_n make_v plain_a but_o they_o that_o be_v seal_v must_v reign_v a_o thousand_o year_n on_o earth_n and_o those_o not_o reach_v to_o the_o end_n by_o some_o age_n as_o we_o will_v show_v by_o the_o help_n of_o god_n at_o the_o twentieth_o chap._n ver_fw-la 4._o but_o it_o grieve_v i_o to_o contend_v so_o often_o with_o this_o jesuitical_a monster_n that_o i_o may_v make_v short_a if_o every_o verse_n almost_o do_v not_o disprove_v this_o exposition_n let_v it_o obtain_v what_o authority_n it_o can_v more_o over_o neither_o be_v these_o good_a angel_n when_o as_o that_o which_o they_o entreprise_v pertain_v rather_o to_o the_o destruction_n of_o soul_n then_o of_o body_n certain_o the_o prohibition_n do_v not_o altogether_o take_v from_o they_o the_o power_n of_o hurt_v but_o restrain_v it_o only_o for_o a_o time_n till_o the_o seal_n be_v finish_v which_o be_v apparent_a to_o have_v be_v do_v before_o that_o the_o trumpet_n do_v blow_v wherefore_o they_o rush_v in_o together_o with_o the_o trumpet_n be_v already_o prepare_v to_o bring_v in_o trouble_n and_o stay_v only_o with_o the_o let_v of_o seal_v assoon_o as_o that_o shall_v be_v dispatch_v they_o shall_v fly_v greedy_o upon_o that_o from_o which_o they_o will_v not_o refrain_v themselves_o unless_o they_o have_v be_v constrain_v therefore_o both_o they_o do_v bring_v those_o four_o mischief_n which_o be_v threathe_v by_o the_o four_o first_o trumpet_n and_o also_o unhappy_a and_o pernicious_a effector_n of_o so_o sorrowful_a event_n they_o may_v be_v show_v by_o name_n from_o those_o trumpet_n so_o that_o the_o first_o may_v be_v call_v contention_n the_o second_o ambition_n the_o three_o heresy_n the_o four_o war_n these_o four_o angel_n do_v take_v to_o themselves_o the_o four_o corner_n of_o the_o earth_n each_o one_o be_v ready_a from_o their_o station_n to_o bring_v in_o that_o mischief_n which_o in_o the_o next_o word_n be_v mention_v for_o assoon_o as_o any_o tranquillity_n appear_v when_o now_o diocletian_n be_v drive_v away_o and_o the_o other_o tyrant_n the_o bishop_n begin_v forthwith_o to_o be_v give_v exceed_o to_o privy_a discord_n what_o mean_n assay_v not_o constantine_n the_o great_a to_o quench_v this_o raise_n flame_n who_o appoint_v a_o synod_n at_o rome_n and_o command_v miltiades_n and_o marcus_n to_o sit_v in_o examination_n of_o the_o controversy_n against_o caecilia_n but_o when_o the_o synod_n be_v not_o able_a to_o end_v the_o strife_n he_o appoint_v for_o chief_a doer_n in_o the_o same_o business_n aurelius_n bishop_n of_o syracuse_n who_o together_o with_o his_o fellow_n in_o office_n he_o command_v to_o go_v from_o the_o city_n arles_n in_o france_n and_o the_o matter_n be_v hear_v again_o to_o set_v they_o at_o one_o that_o be_v at_o variance_n the_o counter-writing_n of_o constantine_n touch_v this_o thing_n be_v to_o be_v see_v in_o euseb_n book_n 10._o 5._o the_o antichristian_a ambition_n spring_v up_o in_o the_o time_n of_o the_o apostle_n lest_o we_o shall_v think_v that_o it_o fail_v now_o in_o play_v her_o part_n but_o now_o say_v paul_n you_o know_v what_o let_v that_o he_o shall_v be_v reveal_v in_o his_o time_n for_o the_o mystery_n of_o iniquity_n work_v already_o 2_o thessaly_n 2.6_o and_o sure_o one_o will_v scarce_o believe_v but_o that_o those_o arrogant_a boasting_n of_o the_o chair_n of_o rome_n with_o which_o the_o decretal_a epistle_n do_v abound_v be_v forge_v of_o the_o posterity_n and_o afterward_o to_o have_v be_v ascribe_v false_o to_o the_o ancient_a father_n so_o impudent_a and_o vain_a be_v they_o unless_o firmilianus_n have_v prove_v that_o they_o be_v their_o own_o at_o least_o for_o a_o great_a part_n who_o name_n they_o bear_v for_o speak_v of_o stephanus_n then_o bishop_n of_o rome_n he_o that_o so_o boast_v say_v he_o of_o the_o place_n of_o his_o bishopric_n and_o avouch_v that_o he_o hold_v succession_n from_o peter_n upon_o who_o the_o foundation_n of_o the_o church_n be_v set_v show_v plain_n enough_o how_o the_o bishop_n than_o be_v give_v to_o boast_v among_o the_o epistle_n of_o cyprian_a epist_n 75._o this_o same_o age_n be_v famous_a by_o the_o begin_n of_o the_o heresy_n of_o arius_n who_o we_o have_v say_v to_o be_v the_o three_o angel_n neither_o be_v the_o northern_a barbarousnes_n which_o have_v bring_v long_o ago_o the_o roman_n under_o the_o yoke_n quiet_a in_o those_o time_n as_o may_v be_v see_v in_o euseb_n upon_o the_o life_n of_o const_n book_n 4._o albeit_o that_o in_o stir_v they_o prevayl_v not_o yet_o there_o want_v not_o a_o desire_n to_o trouble_v the_o state_n that_o we_o may_v easy_o now_o acknowledge_v the_o prontnes_n of_o these_o four_o angel_n and_o they_o do_v in_o such_o sort_n divide_v the_o world_n among_o themselves_o that_o contention_n do_v invade_v with_o force_n from_o the_o east_n ambition_n from_o the_o west_n heresy_n from_o the_o south_n war_n from_o the_o north_n the_o chief_a quarter_n of_o the_o world_n be_v so_o occupy_v that_o the_o hole_n out_o of_o which_o the_o vital_a wind_n shall_v issue_v be_v altogether_o stop_v from_o the_o earth_n as_o shall_v be_v make_v more_o plain_a in_o his_o
adopt_a israelites_n as_o in_o the_o rom._n 2.28_o for_o he_o be_v not_o a_o jew_n who_o be_v one_o outward_a but_o which_o be_v one_o inward_a also_o you_o know_v that_o they_o which_o be_v of_o the_o faith_n be_v the_o child_n of_o abraham_n gal._n 3.7_o and_o again_o peace_n shall_v be_v upon_o they_o and_o mercy_n and_o upon_o the_o israel_n of_o god_n gal._n 6.16_o therefore_o the_o name_n be_v common_a as_o well_o to_o the_o gentile_n as_o to_o the_o jew_n neither_o will_v the_o consideration_n of_o the_o time_n suffer_v that_o the_o natural_a jew_n shall_v here_o be_v signify_v this_o seal_n be_v begin_v by_o and_o by_o after_o the_o tyranny_n of_o diocletian_a be_v utter_o abolish_v as_o we_o have_v show_v before_o and_o to_o this_o number_n only_o be_v ability_n give_v to_o learn_v the_o new_a song_n as_o we_o shall_v see_v in_o the_o fourteen_o chapter_n and_o at_o the_o three_o verse_n which_o in_o these_o time_n be_v not_o proper_a to_o the_o jew_n neither_o ever_o shall_v be_v but_o if_o this_o concern_v the_o time_n shall_v not_o be_v grant_v i_o &_o if_o this_o seal_n be_v to_o be_v expect_v a_o little_a before_o the_o end_n of_o the_o world_n as_o the_o jesuite_n will_v have_v it_o how_o shall_v after_o the_o seal_n of_o the_o jew_n as_o he_o judge_v a_o other_o infinite_a number_n come_v to_o the_o church_n as_o be_v teach_v in_o this_o chap._n ver_fw-la 9_o see_v that_o the_o jew_n shall_v not_o be_v call_v before_o that_o the_o fullness_n of_o the_o gentile_n be_v come_v in_o rom._n 11.25_o furthermore_o it_o shall_v belong_v only_o to_o the_o seal_v to_o learn_v the_o sunge_n but_o if_o the_o jew_n alone_o shall_v be_v seal_v at_o whatsoever_o time_n at_o length_n it_o be_v do_v what_o shall_v become_v of_o your_o most_o holy_a rome_n and_o christ_n vicar_n who_o shall_v have_v no_o place_n among_o the_o seal_a but_o we_o will_v deliver_v the_o most_o bless_a father_n of_o this_o fear_n this_o describe_v form_n of_o the_o primitive_a church_n comprehend_v both_o those_o sort_n of_o people_n indifferent_o so_o as_o they_o all_o as_o well_o of_o gentile_n as_o of_o the_o jew_n who_o love_v the_o sincere_a truth_n in_o their_o heart_n shall_v be_v find_v in_o this_o number_n of_o the_o seal_v and_o indeed_o the_o writer_n do_v make_v mention_n that_o some_o of_o the_o jew_n come_v to_o the_o church_n in_o those_o time_n but_o let_v they_o be_v jew_n they_o shall_v not_o be_v israelites_n alone_o since_o the_o stop_n of_o the_o partition_n wall_n be_v break_v 5_o of_o the_o tribe_n of_o juda_n twelve_o thousand_o hitherto_o the_o general_a sum_n now_o be_v reckon_v the_o particular_a company_n of_o which_o that_o whole_a be_v make_v in_o which_o these_o thing_n be_v to_o be_v observe_v first_o that_o there_o be_v a_o equal_a number_n out_o of_o every_o tribe_n for_o god_n bear_v good_a will_v alike_o to_o all_o the_o elect_a neither_o have_v any_o just_a cause_n of_o complain_v that_o more_o respect_n be_v have_v of_o other_o they_o of_o he_o second_o that_o some_o of_o the_o ancient_a tribe_n be_v pass_v over_o and_o that_o new_a be_v put_v in_o their_o place_n for_o there_o be_v no_o mention_n make_v of_o dan_n or_o ephraim_n but_o in_o place_n of_o they_o come_v levi_n &_o joseph_n some_o allege_v this_o cause_n why_o dan_n be_v omit_v for_o that_o antichrist_n shall_v arise_v out_o of_o that_o tribe_n what_o let_v then_o that_o there_o shall_v not_o be_v two_o antichrist_n see_v the_o name_n also_o of_o ephraim_n be_v omit_v sure_o the_o distinction_n of_o the_o tribe_n will_v have_v be_v very_o profitable_a to_o discern_v antichrist_n from_o other_o man_n which_o god_n undoubted_o will_v have_v keep_v entire_a &_o safe_a that_o his_o church_n may_v beware_v of_o he_o if_o he_o will_v have_v have_v this_o enemy_n to_o come_v out_o of_o this_o nation_n but_o the_o true_a cause_n of_o pass_v by_o they_o seem_v to_o be_v this_o that_o the_o tribe_n of_o dan_n in_o time_n past_o revolt_a to_o the_o gentile_n and_o ephraim_n be_v the_o causer_n of_o the_o rest_n to_o rend_v the_o kingdom_n and_o persuader_n to_o institute_v a_o new_a worship_n whereby_o the_o ten_o tribe_n fall_v away_o from_o god_n for_o jeroboam_fw-la be_v a_o ephratite_n i_o king_n 11.26_o wherefore_o neither_o do_v he_o mention_v he_o but_o ascend_v unto_o the_o first_o patriarche_n teach_v that_o the_o name_n of_o the_o wicked_a shall_v be_v blot_v out_o of_o the_o book_n and_o cathalogue_n of_o the_o live_n as_o we_o have_v observe_v at_o chap._n 3.5_o three_o that_o in_o the_o rehearse_n there_o be_v no_o order_n keep_v either_o of_o beginning_n or_o dignity_n and_o yet_o the_o name_n be_v not_o rash_o gather_v together_o as_o leaf_n fly_v in_o the_o hollow_a rock_n of_o sybille_n although_o peradventure_o it_o will_v be_v a_o very_a hear_v thing_n to_o find_v out_o any_o reason_n why_o they_o be_v set_v down_o in_o this_o wise_a yet_o nevertheless_o let_v we_o assay_v to_o do_v it_o trust_v in_o god_n his_o help_n the_o country_n do_v seem_v unto_o i_o to_o be_v note_v from_o which_o god_n will_v gather_v out_o his_o elect_a in_o all_o this_o space_n of_o time_n when_o the_o church_n lie_v hide_v and_o will_v severe_a they_o from_o the_o vile_a and_o naughty_a person_n of_o the_o world_n in_o the_o same_o order_n of_o place_n wherein_o the_o tribe_n of_o the_o israelite_n long_o ago_o take_v up_o their_o seat_n in_o the_o promise_a land_n to_o wit_n in_o this_o manner_n that_o juda_n shall_v signify_v the_o southern_a part_n of_o the_o church_n reuben_n and_o gad_n the_o eastern_a ascher_n and_o nephtalim_fw-la the_o northern_a and_o the_o west_n part_n manasse_n partly_o the_o eastern_a partly_o the_o western_a who_o dwell_v on_o this_o side_n and_o beyond_o jordan_n symeon_n &_o levi_n that_o part_n which_o be_v spread_v here_o and_o there_o and_o one_o with_o another_o issachar_n and_o zabulon_n the_o north-east_n part_n to_o wit_v the_o sun_n raise_v joseph_n and_o benjamin_n the_o middle_a country_n for_o we_o shall_v see_v that_o after_o constantine_n be_v dead_a there_o be_v such_o a_o wander_a progress_n as_o it_o be_v of_o the_o church_n for_o in_o the_o first_o time_n her_o pure_a part_n seem_v to_o have_v be_v in_o africa_n as_o it_o be_v in_o the_o tribe_n of_o juda_n the_o which_o most_o of_o all_o than_o be_v free_a from_o the_o arian_n heresy_n thoug_a bring_v forth_o by_o egypt_n next_o neighbour_n and_o in_o the_o mean_a time_n infinite_a uncleanness_n have_v overflow_v the_o rest_n of_o the_o world_n and_o this_o purity_n continue_v from_o constantine_n till_o the_o invasion_n of_o the_o vandal_n then_o reuben_n and_o gad_n succeed_v for_o when_o that_o barbarous_a people_n pester_v the_o whole_a west_n and_o south_n that_o which_o rest_v of_o the_o hope_n &_o face_n of_o the_o church_n do_v all_o flourish_n in_o the_o east_n but_o when_o the_o saracene_n at_o length_n destroy_v also_o this_o vinyarde_n our_o britanny_n and_o the_o northern_a region_n lie_v towards_o the_o west_n as_o asher_n and_o nephtalim_fw-la flourish_v great_o when_o more_o than_o two_o thousand_o monk_n of_o bangor_n refuse_v to_o take_v upon_o they_o the_o romish_a yoke_n for_o which_o cause_n the_o britan_n do_v undergo_v a_o grievous_a persecution_n raise_v up_o by_o one_o augustine_n a_o romish_a monk_n the_o sequent_a age_n give_v manasse_n partly_o the_o east_n partly_o the_o west_n when_o both_o leo_n isaurus_n and_o also_o carolus_n magnus_n with_o joint_a endeavour_n though_o somewhat_o disjoin_v in_o respect_n of_o place_n and_o time_n assemble_v counsel_n condemn_v worship_v of_o image_n the_o next_o time_n be_v most_o miserable_a when_o now_o antichrist_n be_v come_v to_o his_o high_a power_n and_o dignity_n now_o the_o truth_n do_v lie_v so_o trample_v under_o foot_n every_o where_o that_o the_o church_n can_v not_o be_v see_v in_o any_o certain_a place_n of_o abide_v but_o the_o seal_v as_o simeon_n &_o levi_n do_v lie_v hide_v confuse_o and_o here_o and_o there_o know_v to_o god_n only_o remove_v far_o from_o the_o sight_n of_o the_o world_n in_o the_o age_n follow_v after_o the_o seal_n pass_v over_o unto_o issachar_n and_o zabulon_n that_o be_v to_o the_o northern_a people_n lie_v towards_o the_o sun_n raise_v for_o there_o be_v read_v famous_a conversion_n in_o this_o time_n of_o the_o polonian_n saxone_n danes_n suevian_o &_o norwegian_n and_o although_o the_o conversion_n come_v by_o the_o labour_n of_o superstitious_a man_n yet_o nevertheless_o be_v be_v the_o seal_n of_o god_n and_o profitable_a to_o his_o elect_a for_o where_o the_o doctrine_n be_v corrupt_a and_o contaminate_v with_o error_n there_o the_o grass_n be_v better_a than_o the_o stalk_n the_o seed_n new_a swoon_n
which_o pertain_v to_o the_o elect_a in_o this_o verse_n in_o respect_n of_o who_o the_o smoke_n of_o the_o odour_n be_v say_v to_o go_v up_o that_o be_v they_o be_v make_v partaker_n of_o the_o thing_n which_o they_o desire_v so_o great_o the_o manner_n of_o speak_v be_v take_v from_o the_o same_o custom_n of_o the_o leviticall_a priest_n the_o similitude_n of_o who_o he_o have_v use_v hitherto_o once_o every_o year_n the_o censer_n be_v to_o be_v bring_v within_o the_o veil_n that_o the_o cloud_n of_o the_o incense_n may_v cover_v the_o mercy_n seat_n which_o be_v upon_o the_o testimony_n to_o the_o end_n that_o the_o priest_n shall_v not_o die_v as_o we_o read_v in_o the_o book_n of_o levit._n chapter_n sixteen_o twelve_o and_o thirtheenth_fw-mi verse_n also_o incense_n be_v to_o be_v burn_v every_o morning_n when_o the_o lamp_n shall_v be_v kindle_v as_o in_o the_o book_n of_o exodus_fw-la chapter_n thirty_o verse_n seven_o and_o eight_o who_o thick_a vapour_n ascend_v shall_v pierce_v through_o the_o veil_n and_o shall_v perfume_v with_o a_o most_o sweet_a savour_v all_o the_o inward_a most_o holy_a place_n a_o visible_a sign_n of_o our_o prayer_n which_o do_v penetrate_v the_o heaven_n and_o by_o the_o sweet_a savour_n which_o they_o cast_v forth_o through_o christ_n do_v obtain_v of_o god_n that_o which_o we_o ask_v from_o whence_o the_o psalmist_n say_v let_v my_o prayer_n be_v esteem_v as_o incense_v before_o thy_o face_n psalm_n hundred_o and_o fourthy_a one_o second_o verse_n therefore_o the_o smoke_n of_o the_o odour_n go_v up_o when_o our_o prayer_n come_v before_o god_n do_v obtain_v for_o we_o that_o which_o we_o ask_v according_a to_o his_o will_n and_o when_o the_o holy_a man_n desire_v that_o some_o way_n shall_v be_v take_v for_o the_o end_n of_o that_o strife_n by_o a_o general_a council_n proclaim_v by_o these_o thing_n be_v show_v that_o the_o thing_n be_v grant_v they_o at_o length_n which_o they_o desire_v for_o constantine_n see_v that_o he_o do_v try_v in_o vain_a all_o other_o remedy_n appoint_v a_o general_a council_n at_o nice_a he_o command_v the_o bishop_n to_o take_v public_a horse_n and_o all_o to_o assemble_v at_o the_o day_n appoint_v who_o at_o last_o be_v gather_v together_o he_o most_o sweet_o admonish_v touch_v the_o care_n that_o they_o shall_v have_v to_o search_v out_o the_o truth_n he_o with_o very_o great_a equity_n hear_v the_o disputer_n against_o it_o final_o he_o govern_v the_o whole_a business_n with_o such_o gravity_n and_o wisdom_n that_o at_o length_n the_o wicked_a blasphemy_n be_v condemn_v by_o common_a consent_n the_o holy_a truth_n prevail_v by_o which_o fact_n of_o his_o sure_o the_o thick_a cloud_n of_o the_o odour_n go_v up_o from_o the_o hand_n of_o the_o angel_n before_o god_n when_o doubtless_o by_o his_o care_n pain_n diligence_n charge_n moderation_n of_o the_o whole_a business_n so_o wholesome_a a_o thing_n so_o much_o desire_v of_o all_o the_o godly_a be_v undertake_v begin_v and_o bring_v to_o a_o end_n now_o he_o set_v a_o mark_n in_o the_o forehead_n of_o the_o elect_a whereby_o they_o may_v be_v discern_v from_o the_o base_a sort_n of_o the_o ungodly_a therefore_o constantine_n be_v that_o angel_n those_o odour_n give_v he_o which_o he_o shall_v give_v to_o the_o prayer_n of_o the_o saint_n be_v the_o power_n to_o gather_v a_o general_a council_n the_o golden_a altar_n be_v christ_n himself_o in_o the_o mid_n of_o this_o holy_a company_n the_o thick_a cloud_n of_o the_o odour_n go_v up_o be_v the_o whole_a matter_n bring_v to_o a_o end_n most_o prosperous_o and_o this_o be_v that_o time_n until_o which_o the_o four_o angel_n shall_v keep_v the_o truce_n of_o which_o we_o have_v see_v at_o the_o 7._o chap._n ver_fw-la 1._o ¶_o with_o the_o prayer_n of_o the_o saint_n prayer_n peradventure_o by_o the_o want_n of_o a_o participle_n not_o of_o the_o preposition_n with_o as_o if_o the_o perfect_a sentence_n be_v this_o and_o the_o smoke_n of_o the_o odour_n which_o be_v give_v to_o the_o prayer_n of_o the_o saint_n go_v up_o the_o word_n be_v repeat_v from_o the_o former_a verse_n where_o be_v that_o he_o shall_v give_v to_o the_o prayer_n a_o thing_n very_o usual_a with_o the_o hebrew_n to_o understand_v in_o the_o thing_n that_o follow_v the_o verb_n that_o be_v use_v before_o but_o by_o this_o reason_n the_o odour_n give_v shall_v only_o ascend_v and_o not_o also_o the_o other_o pray_v of_o the_o saint_n which_o also_o be_v odour_n as_o we_o have_v see_v in_o the_o fifte_a chapter_n &_o at_o the_o eight_o verse_n therefore_o by_o want_n of_o the_o preposition_n the_o sense_n seem_v better_a to_o agree_v yet_o theodorus_n bez_fw-fr have_v it_o with_o the_o preposition_n with_o and_o not_o with_o the_o of_o as_o the_o common_a translation_n and_o the_o jesuite_n who_o interprete_v it_o material_o that_o the_o odour_n ascend_v be_v make_v of_o the_o prayer_n of_o the_o saint_n when_o it_o be_v say_v before_o that_o he_o shall_v give_v to_o the_o prayer_n of_o the_o saint_n but_o nothing_o that_o be_v give_v to_o a_o thing_n be_v make_v of_o the_o same_o thing_n to_o which_o it_o be_v give_v ¶_o out_o of_o the_o angel_n hand_n because_o he_o hold_v a_o censer_n in_o his_o hand_n but_o which_o be_v as_o much_o as_o if_o he_o shall_v say_v by_o the_o ministry_n of_o the_o angel_n constantine_n minister_a whatsoever_o be_v needful_a for_o this_o matter_n 5_o after_o the_o angel_n take_v the_o censer_n and_o fill_v it_o with_o fire_n of_o the_o altar_n the_o fact_n of_o the_o angel_n as_o far_o as_o it_o respect_v the_o wicked_a but_o the_o full_a censer_n show_v the_o greatness_n of_o the_o evil_a the_o fire_n of_o the_o altar_n the_o kind_n of_o it_o that_o be_v a_o excellent_a confession_n of_o the_o faith_n which_o the_o holy_a council_n publish_v against_o heresy_n which_o sure_o be_v like_o the_o coal_n of_o the_o altar_n which_o the_o fire_n fall_v from_o heaven_n kindle_v in_o the_o heart_n of_o the_o saint_n upon_o which_o they_o may_v burn_v most_o sweet_a odour_n in_o call_v upon_o one_o true_a god_n in_o three_o person_n but_o this_o same_o fire_n cast_v into_o the_o earth_n that_o be_v this_o godly_a confession_n spread_v abroad_o every_o where_n by_o the_o emperor_n proclamation_n into_o the_o wicked_a world_n or_o the_o church_n at_o least_o in_o name_n for_o i_o tell_v you_o that_o so_o the_o earth_n signifi_v often_o time_n how_o great_a trouble_v raise_v it_o up_o forthwith_o doubtless_o even_o as_o that_o fire_n ca●t_n on_o the_o earth_n by_o christ_n make_v all_o full_a of_o privy_a displeasure_n &_o broil_n while_o the_o godly_a with_o the_o heat_n of_o it_o be_v inflame_v with_o a_o desire_n of_o the_o truth_n but_o the_o wicked_a be_v set_v on_o fire_n with_o hatred_n and_o envy_n luke_n 12.49_o so_o this_o holy_a decree_n a_o firebrand_n of_o the_o same_o heavenly_a fire_n raise_v up_o a_o very_a great_a hatred_n in_o the_o contrary_a will_n of_o man_n when_o the_o trumpet_n be_v first_o give_v they_o fight_v one_o against_o a_o other_o only_o with_o a_o dissent_v of_o opinion_n but_o the_o evil_n increase_v now_o by_o the_o remedy_n as_o canker_n be_v wont_a for_o after_o this_o council_n come_v all_o manner_n of_o calamity_n deceit_n and_o false_a accusation_n which_o be_v show_v here_o brief_o by_o the_o voice_n thundering_n and_o lightning_n afterward_o be_v declare_v several_o in_o the_o first_o trumpete_fw-it so_o therefore_o that_o which_o be_v holy_a and_o wholesome_a to_o the_o godly_a turn_v to_o great_a destruction_n and_o provoke_v to_o the_o wicked_a ¶_o and_o there_o be_v thunder_n and_o voice_n some_o book_n have_v voice_n and_o thunder_n aretas_n only_o thunder_v and_o lightning_n omit_v voice_n and_o earthquake_n these_o thing_n do_v note_v general_o what_o fruit_n of_o that_o council_n shall_v redound_v to_o the_o wicked_a but_o thunder_n and_o voice_n seem_v here_o to_o be_v two_o word_n for_o one_o thing_n to_o wit_n loud_a thunder_n as_o jer._n 4.29_o they_o shall_v go_v into_o the_o very_a cloud_n and_o climb_v up_o upon_o the_o rock_n that_o be_v upon_o the_o cloudy_a rock_n by_o reason_n of_o the_o height_n of_o they_o unless_o peradventure_o voice_n be_v the_o same_o thing_n here_o which_o they_o be_v in_o the_o 4._o chap._n 5_o ver_fw-la 6_o and_o the_o seven_o angel_n which_o have_v the_o second_o preparation_n of_o the_o seven_o angel_n who_o now_o go_v about_o the_o business_n of_o which_o before_o in_o the_o trumpet_n that_o be_v give_v there_o be_v give_v some_o proof_n for_o these_o thing_n a●e_v speak_v of_o the_o execute_n of_o the_o work_n as_o likewise_o the_o wife_n of_o the_o lamb_n be_v say_v to_o make_v herself_o ready_a at_o the_o very_a
of_o the_o jew_n the_o which_o other_o scripture_n show_v that_o it_o shall_v sure_o come_v to_o pass_v before_o that_o there_o be_v a_o end_n of_o the_o whole_a frame_n of_o the_o world_n neither_o in_o examine_v every_o minute_n of_o the_o seven_o trumpet_n shall_v we_o find_v that_o the_o revelation_n go_v any_o further_a then_o to_o the_o restauration_n of_o this_o people_n as_o with_o god_n help_v we_o shall_v make_v it_o apparent_a in_o his_o fit_a place_n which_o restore_v doubtless_o may_v well_o be_v call_v a_o mystery_n because_o it_o be_v so_o far_o remove_v from_o all_o humane_a understanding_n of_o which_o there_o be_v almost_o no_o hope_n in_o they_o to_o who_o the_o very_a benefit_n pertain_v as_o in_o many_o place_n the_o prophet_n show_n why_o speak_v the_o lord_n by_o isaiah_n shall_v thou_o say_v o_o jacob_n and_o speak_v o_o israel_n my_o way_n be_v hide_v from_o the_o lord_n and_o my_o cause_n be_v pass_v over_o of_o my_o god_n chap._n 40.27_o and_o again_o if_o so_o be_v that_o zion_n say_v the_o lord_n have_v forsake_v i_o and_o my_o lord_n have_v forget_v i_o chap._n 49.14_o therefore_o i_o suppose_v that_o this_o call_n of_o the_o jew_n be_v this_o mystery_n doubtless_o it_o be_v sure_a that_o in_o the_o time_n of_o this_o trumpet_n the_o last_o end_n shall_v be_v put_v to_o all_o thing_n and_o therefore_o we_o shall_v find_v no_o such_o conclusion_n of_o the_o seven_o trumpet_n the_o three_o woe_n be_v past_a as_o of_o the_o five_o one_o woe_n be_v past_a chap._n 9.12_o likewise_o of_o the_o sixth_o chap_n 11.14_o for_o the_o revelation_n lead_v not_o thither_o because_o neither_o pertain_v it_o to_o we_o to_o know_v neither_o be_v it_o to_o be_v impert_v to_o any_o creature_n which_o the_o son_n himself_o know_v not_o as_o far_o as_o he_o be_v a_o man_n marc._n 13.32_o ¶_o as_o he_o have_v declare_v to_o his_o servant_n the_o prophet_n to_o who_o this_o mystery_n be_v reveal_v plenteous_o but_o which_o be_v not_o understand_v of_o our_o expositor_n whereby_o it_o come_v to_o pass_v that_o the_o thing_n which_o the_o prophet_n foreshewe_v to_o come_v the_o common_a sort_n so_o interpret_v as_o if_o they_o be_v pass_v moses_n in_o his_o most_o famous_a song_n about_o the_o end_n sing_v this_o mystery_n deut._n 32._o david_n every_o wherein_o the_o psalm_n so_o isaiah_n jeremiah_n ezechiell_n and_o the_o rest_n it_o will_v be_v too_o long_o even_o to_o reckon_v the_o place_n learned_a man_n will_v be_v content_a with_o this_o bare_a disclose_v who_o it_o be_v sufficient_a to_o admonish_v even_o in_o one_o word_n that_o they_o will_v seek_v another_o meaning_n of_o many_o place_n in_o the_o prophet_n than_o hitherto_o they_o have_v follow_v in_o their_o exposition_n if_o these_o thing_n be_v to_o be_v understand_v of_o the_o last_o come_n of_o christ_n to_o judgement_n there_o be_v not_o very_o many_o word_n or_o at_o the_o least_o clear_a enough_o in_o the_o prophet_n touch_v this_o thing_n but_o from_o hence_o we_o learn_v that_o the_o old_a prophecy_n be_v not_o to_o be_v finish_v either_o in_o the_o first_o come_v of_o christ_n or_o in_o the_o call_n of_o the_o gentile_n but_o that_o they_o reach_v even_o unto_o the_o perfect_a accomplish_n of_o the_o mystery_n wherefore_o they_o that_o do_v restrain_v they_o into_o the_o narrow_a strait_n of_o the_o call_n of_o the_o gentile_n stop_v up_o to_o themselves_o the_o way_n to_o understand_v they_o and_o take_v away_o much_o comfort_n from_o the_o church_n 8_o go_v thy_o way_n and_o take_v the_o little_a book_n a_o other_o thing_n to_o be_v communicate_v be_v prophecy_n restore_v again_o to_o the_o church_n for_o this_o commandment_n show_v what_o shall_v come_v to_o pass_v to_o the_o minister_n of_o the_o word_n in_o the_o time_n of_o this_o sixth_o trumpet_n john_n himself_o for_o his_o part_n seem_v before_o now_o to_o have_v be_v furnish_v sufficient_o for_o the_o receive_n of_o the_o revelation_n both_o by_o those_o thing_n which_o he_o see_v and_o hear_v and_o also_o endue_v with_o the_o inspiration_n of_o the_o spirit_n extraordinary_o and_o if_o the_o pass_n from_o one_o matter_n to_o a_o other_o have_v be_v set_v forth_o only_o for_o to_o teach_v he_o will_v have_v use_v the_o same_o in_o their_o fit_a place_n in_o the_o rest_n of_o the_o treatise_n wherefore_o i_o doubt_v not_o but_o that_o here_o a_o type_n be_v set_v forth_o of_o the_o minister_n of_o that_o time_n as_o in_o many_o place_n elsewhere_o john_n represent_v the_o faithful_a therefore_o as_o here_o the_o book_n be_v receive_v from_o the_o angel_n and_o eat_v up_o he_o shall_v play_v the_o prophet_n again_o so_o about_o these_o time_n shall_v be_v raise_v up_o faithful_a minister_n which_o shall_v declare_v the_o truth_n to_o the_o world_n we_o make_v mention_v that_o some_o godly_a man_n about_o the_o time_n that_o the_o turkish_a tyranny_n begin_v and_o the_o foot_n of_o the_o angel_n set_v upon_o the_o sea_n &_o the_o earth_n arise_v forthwith_o who_o undertake_v bold_o the_o charge_n of_o prophesy_v which_o be_v a_o notable_a benefit_n of_o god_n this_o office_n have_v be_v banish_v a_o long_a time_n from_o the_o earth_n put_v to_o flight_n by_o the_o hellish_a smoke_n which_o the_o bottomless_a pit_n open_v by_o the_o romish_a star_n send_v forth_o now_o it_o come_v again_o by_o the_o grace_n of_o god_n and_o man_n be_v bid_v to_o take_v the_o little_a book_n open_a which_o the_o former_a time_n have_v shut_v the_o force_n of_o which_o commandment_n raise_v up_o those_o which_o i_o speak_v of_o and_o many_o other_o which_o follow_v who_o unless_o a_o heavenly_a desire_n have_v inflame_v they_o will_v not_o have_v offer_v their_o life_n to_o so_o many_o danger_n which_o necessary_o be_v to_o be_v undergo_v in_o so_o great_a envy_n &_o hatred_n almost_o of_o all_o man_n but_o from_o this_o commandment_n we_o draw_v this_o common_a sentence_n that_o man_n be_v slow_a &_o loath_a to_o take_v the_o pain_n to_o prophecy_n &_o not_o otherwise_o to_o settle_v themselves_o to_o this_o office_n except_o they_o be_v stir_v forward_o of_o god_n 9_o therefore_o i_o go_v unto_o the_o angel_n say_v to_o he_o give_v i_o the_o little_a book_n this_o gift_n be_v to_o be_v obtain_v by_o entreaty_n even_o also_o of_o they_o who_o have_v ability_n give_v they_o thereunto_o we_o must_v desire_v earnest_o of_o god_n with_o john_n that_o he_o will_v give_v we_o the_o little_a book_n albeit_o we_o be_v now_o enter_v into_o this_o office_n and_o the_o little_a book_n be_v give_v when_o great_a abondance_n of_o knowledge_n be_v minister_v which_o be_v most_o excellent_a in_o this_o age_n now_o first_o of_o all_o the_o art_n of_o print_v book_n be_v find_v out_o by_o a_o great_a gift_n of_o god_n but_o further_a these_o thing_n declare_v that_o the_o man_n of_o that_o time_n be_v awake_v once_o of_o god_n from_o their_o drowsiness_n shall_v great_o endeavour_v to_o profit_v more_o in_o the_o kindle_a truth_n and_o sure_o their_o industry_n be_v notable_a and_o their_o increase_n in_o all_o kind_n of_o knowledge_n chief_o of_o divinity_n so_o swift_a that_o thou_o may_v say_v not_o without_o cause_n that_o they_o have_v not_o so_o much_o read_v as_o devour_v the_o book_n after_o wickliefe_n the_o barbarousnes_n of_o the_o scholastique_n be_v reject_v the_o liberal_a art_n be_v revive_v through_o so_o happy_a abundance_n of_o most_o famous_a witter_n that_o there_o be_v none_o but_o he_o must_v confess_v that_o to_o be_v the_o time_n of_o devour_a book_n ¶_o and_o it_o shall_v make_v thy_o belly_n bitter_a the_o word_n taste_v in_o the_o mouth_n be_v sweet_a but_o bitter_a in_o the_o belly_n that_o be_v the_o knowledge_n of_o god_n will_v be_v very_o sweet_a &_o pleasant_a of_o itself_o but_o the_o publish_n of_o it_o whereby_o fruit_n may_v come_v to_o the_o rest_n of_o the_o member_n even_o like_o the_o digestion_n of_o meat_n when_o it_o be_v concoct_v in_o the_o stomach_n be_v full_a of_o trouble_n and_o anguish_n which_o thing_n sometime_o jeremy_n try_v and_o complain_v of_o chap._n 15.16_o likewise_o ezechiell_n chap._n 3.3_o and_o all_o none_o except_v who_o have_v run_v together_o in_o this_o race_n but_o those_o new_a champion_n especial_o i_o mean_v of_o this_o time_n to_o who_o doubtless_o the_o word_n be_v so_o much_o the_o sweet_a by_o how_o much_o they_o come_v with_o a_o more_o sound_o hunger_n to_o wit_n have_v be_v steal_v away_o from_o the_o world_n for_o some_o age_n and_o now_o first_o again_o restore_v by_o the_o favour_n of_o god_n whore_n ambassage_n contrariwise_o be_v so_o much_o the_o more_o bitter_a by_o how_o much_o man_n be_v plunge_v in_o more_o thick_a darkness_n who_o because_o of_o the_o long_a custom_n of_o
lustification_n and_o the_o sincerity_n of_o the_o whole_a faith_n for_o the_o garment_n as_o we_o have_v show_v in_o other_o place_n be_v the_o impute_a righteousness_n of_o christ_n the_o sun_n note_v the_o light_n of_o the_o scripture_n therefore_o the_o clothing_n of_o the_o sun_n be_v such_o a_o confidence_n in_o the_o righteousness_n of_o christ_n alone_o as_o the_o scripture_n teach_v which_o be_v a_o most_o comely_a ornament_n of_o the_o first_o church_n which_o the_o opinion_n of_o our_o strength_n have_v no_o whit_n yet_o darken_v in_o other_o place_n of_o the_o scripture_n this_o clothing_n be_v of_o white_a and_o pure_a linen_n but_o the_o glory_n of_o any_o late_a time_n do_v not_o attain_v unto_o this_o most_o excellent_a glory_n of_o the_o sun_n the_o moon_n under_o her_o foot_n this_o be_v common_o and_o ordinary_o refer_v unto_o the_o despise_a and_o tread_v under_o foot_n vanity_n of_o worldly_a thing_n which_o be_v as_o variable_a and_o changeable_a as_o the_o moon_n in_o which_o respect_n the_o woman_n have_v no_o great_a regard_n of_o such_o earthly_a thing_n then_o of_o that_o which_o common_o man_n do_v trample_v and_o tread_v upon_o with_o the_o sole_n of_o their_o foot_n but_o from_o the_o former_a thing_n we_o have_v learn_v that_o the_o moon_n do_v signify_v the_o light_n of_o truth_n and_o doctrine_n borrow_v from_o the_o scripture_n which_o now_o be_v put_v under_o her_o foot_n may_v show_v that_o all_o the_o step_n of_o this_o church_n be_v direct_v and_o dispose_v according_a to_o the_o only_a rule_n of_o the_o one_o of_o these_o for_o it_o be_v not_o enough_o to_o shine_v round_o about_o with_o the_o sun_n unless_o the_o step_n be_v set_v in_o the_o way_n of_o godliness_n as_o therefore_o the_o clothing_n of_o the_o sun_n be_v the_o doctrine_n of_o faith_n so_o the_o moon_n under_o the_o foot_n be_v the_o doctrine_n of_o manner_n which_o be_v either_o public_a or_o private_a they_o comprehend_v the_o whole_a manner_n of_o worship_v god_n and_o revoke_v of_o those_o that_o err_v which_o be_v call_v discipline_n common_o these_o private_a be_v see_v in_o the_o common_a life_n of_o every_o one_o great_a be_v the_o glory_n then_o of_o the_o woman_n before_o who_o the_o heavenly_a light_n of_o truth_n go_v in_o all_o thing_n whether_o public_o or_o private_o i_o take_v rather_o this_o latter_a apply_v because_o it_o be_v more_o fit_a to_o abide_v in_o the_o signification_n once_o receive_v albeit_o i_o will_v not_o have_v utter_o reject_v the_o former_a interpretation_n as_o be_v godly_a and_o learned_a the_o crown_n of_o twelve_o star_n on_o the_o head_n signifi_v the_o shine_a administer_v of_o the_o doctrine_n the_o twelve_o apostle_n by_o who_o preach_v the_o church_n be_v found_v and_o also_o the_o apostolical_a man_n who_o receive_v the_o word_n from_o they_o that_o see_v the_o thing_n do_v their selve_o preserve_v the_o church_n chaste_a and_o undefiled_a but_o it_o be_v to_o be_v observe_v that_o the_o woman_n do_v carry_v the_o star_n in_o a_o other_o manner_n then_o christ_n he_o be_v lord_n of_o all_o carry_v they_o as_o it_o be_v servant_n in_o his_o hand_n chap._n 2.16_o she_o bear_v they_o as_o her_o chief_a ornament_n on_o the_o crown_n of_o her_o head_n such_o than_o be_v the_o particular_a explication_n which_o description_n how_o well_o it_o agree_v to_o that_o church_n no_o man_n can_v be_v ignorant_a of_o who_o have_v be_v even_o but_o mean_o acquaint_v with_o the_o history_n she_o be_v most_o glorious_a by_o the_o clothing_n of_o the_o righteousness_n of_o faith_n in_o retain_v faithful_o the_o doctrine_n which_o she_o have_v receive_v from_o christ_n the_o apostle_n evangelist_n and_o other_o apostolic_a man_n neither_o be_v she_o yet_o defile_v with_o the_o uncleanness_n of_o humane_a invention_n but_o in_o the_o whole_a worship_n discipline_n life_n manner_n she_o have_v the_o moon_n under_o her_o foot_n follow_v the_o sacred_a truth_n as_o her_o north-star_n in_o all_o thing_n there_o be_v one_o form_n of_o govern_v in_o all_o church_n the_o very_a same_o which_o be_v teach_v in_o the_o act_n of_o the_o apostle_n and_o their_o other_o writing_n or_o if_o any_o man_n will_v refer_v the_o moon_n to_o the_o vanity_n of_o worldly_a thing_n how_o free_a be_v she_o from_o ambition_n and_o desire_v of_o honour_n how_o great_o do_v she_o abhor_v the_o covet_v of_o riches_n and_o contention_n for_o dignity_n how_o sincere_a be_v the_o history_n of_o that_o time_n in_o eusebius_n the_o bishop_n be_v reckon_v by_o name_n excellent_a for_o their_o manner_n and_o doctrine_n their_o conflict_n labour_n and_o suffering_n be_v declare_v but_o as_o yet_o the_o proud_a name_n of_o honour_n and_o dignity_n be_v unknown_a to_o the_o world_n the_o burn_a mountain_n be_v not_o yet_o cast_v into_o the_o sea_n neither_o have_v satan_n bring_v in_o arrogancy_n and_o pride_n but_o the_o pastor_n use_v singular_a modesty_n be_v very_o careful_a for_o the_o good_a estate_n of_o their_o flock_n not_o heap_v riches_n and_o lordly_a title_n for_o pomp_n one_o paulus_n samosatenꝰ_n be_v call_v magnific_a lord_n and_o 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d as_o a_o forerunner_n of_o antichrist_n guard_v with_o a_o great_a company_n of_o man_n servant_n whereof_o some_o go_v before_o some_o follow_v after_o see_v the_o synodical_a epistle_n in_o eusebe_n book_n 7._o chap._n 30._o but_o when_o this_o insolency_n be_v hate_v of_o all_o the_o rest_n than_o the_o time_n now_o draw_v near_o when_o this_o vain_a glorious_a bishop_n rise_v up_o in_o which_o the_o woman_n hide_v herself_o i_o be_o not_o ignorant_a but_o that_o pride_n have_v spring_v up_o in_o some_o other_o sort_n but_o the_o spirit_n describe_v the_o womaa_n by_o those_o mark_n which_o be_v yet_o evident_a not_o by_o those_o which_o grow_v up_o about_o the_o end_n of_o that_o flourish_a estate_n and_o secret_o such_o be_v this_o church_n &_o such_o aught_o every_o one_o to_o be_v but_o of_o which_o sort_n none_o have_v be_v since_o that_o time_n for_o we_o shall_v find_v those_o that_o follow_v not_o clothe_v with_o the_o sun_n but_o with_o the_o night_n not_o tread_v under_o foot_n the_o moon_n but_o the_o earth_n neither_o have_v the_o shine_a star_n on_o her_o head_n but_o golden_a ornament_n ¶_o a_o crown_n of_o star_n this_o crown_n of_o star_n be_v wonderful_a among_o mortal_a man_n gold_n be_v wont_a to_o be_v appoint_v for_o this_o thing_n but_o to_o what_o end_n shall_v she_o have_v gold_n on_o her_o head_n under_o who_o foot_n do_v lie_v whatsoever_o be_v precious_a in_o this_o world_n the_o glory_n therefore_o hereof_o be_v the_o integrity_n of_o the_o minister_n no_o mortal_a dignity_n the_o faithfulness_n of_o these_o be_v the_o glory_n of_o the_o church_n which_o be_v in_o a_o mourn_a estate_n when_o these_o loose_a their_o light_n 2_o and_o be_v great_a with_o child_n she_o cry_v travail_v in_o birth_n the_o four_o property_n her_o traveiling_n with_o child_n have_v in_o the_o womb_n as_o mat._n 1.18_o aretas_n &_o the_o common_a translation_n have_v she_o cry_v be_v in_o labour_n with_o child_n pain_v to_o bring_v forth_o that_o be_v in_o bring_v forth_o or_o that_o she_o may_v bring_v forth_o by_o a_o syntax_n not_o unlike_a to_o that_o whereby_o we_o saz_v fair_a to_o see_v valiant_a to_o fight_v the_o church_n have_v exceed_o great_a pain_n for_o along_o time_n as_o it_o be_v of_o a_o woman_n travail_v with_o child_n and_o she_o desire_v in_o all_o her_o prayer_n to_o be_v free_v at_o length_n from_o that_o most_o afflict_a condition_n wherein_o she_o be_v under_o the_o heathenish_a most_o cruel_a emperor_n which_o thing_n she_o know_v that_o she_o shall_v obtain_v if_o sometime_o at_o length_n she_o can_v bring_v forth_o one_o who_o shall_v rule_v the_o common_a wealth_n and_o have_v the_o chief_a menage_n of_o thing_n for_o the_o woman_n be_v not_o barren_a before_o this_o time_n but_o happy_a for_o issue_v in_o very_o great_a number_n but_o one_o son_n be_v yet_o want_v who_o may_v be_v able_a to_o defend_v she_o from_o the_o injury_n of_o the_o enemy_n who_o while_o she_o be_v in_o labour_n with_o and_o prepare_v a_o defender_n she_o suffer_v most_o sharp_a pain_n before_o she_o can_v obtain_v that_o which_o she_o desire_v 3_o and_o another_o wonder_n appear_v so_o be_v the_o description_n of_o the_o woman_n the_o rest_n of_o her_o condition_n be_v make_v apparent_a from_o the_o description_n of_o the_o enemy_n to_o wit_v the_o dragon_n both_o from_o the_o thing_n inherent_a in_o this_o verse_n and_o also_o from_o the_o effect_n in_o the_o verse_n follow_v those_o first_o be_v his_o red_a colour_n horn_n head_n crown_n before_o all_o which_o be_v set_v the_o place_n in_o which_o the_o dragon_n appear_v to_o wit_n in_o
clergy_n neither_o of_o king_n nor_o of_o the_o people_n again_o god_n will_v have_v the_o cause_n of_o other_o man_n to_o be_v end_v by_o man_n likewise_o the_o whole_a church_n through_o the_o world_n know_v that_o the_o holy_a roman_a church_n have_v right_a to_o judge_v concern_v all_o man_n neither_o may_v any_o judge_n of_o her_o judgement_n this_o be_v call_v a_o power_n of_o do_v for_o excellency_n sake_n such_o as_o indeed_o belong_v to_o no_o emperor_n who_o refuse_v not_o to_o he_o refrain_v with_o the_o bound_n of_o law_n and_o all_o their_o action_n to_o betried_a by_o the_o rule_n of_o equity_n and_o justice_n as_o touch_v the_o word_n aretas_n read_v and_o power_n be_v give_v he_o to_o make_v war_n month_n etc._n etc._n in_o like_a manner_n also_o montanus_n and_o plantine_n edition_n the_o common_a translation_n absolute_o as_o also_o theodorus_n beza_n and_o the_o rest_n of_o the_o greek_a copy_n the_o like_a use_n of_o this_o word_n in_o a_o like_a matter_n in_o daniel_n favour_v this_o read_n he_o shall_v cast_v down_o say_v he_o the_o truth_n to_o the_o ground_n and_o shall_v do_v and_o he_o shall_v prosper_v in_o the_o eight_o chapter_n the_o twelve_o &_o four_o and_o twenty_a verse_n and_o he_o shall_v prosper_v wonderful_o and_o shall_v do_v so_o in_o the_o eleven_o chapter_n verse_n twenty_o eight_o he_o shall_v do_v and_o shall_v return_v to_o his_o own_o land_n in_o which_o place_n be_v signify_v a_o certain_a free_a and_o chief_a power_n of_o do_v which_o shall_v not_o fear_v the_o judgement_n of_o any_o the_o time_n of_o do_v be_v two_o and_o forty_o mon●ths_n the_o same_o space_n wherein_o the_o temple_n remain_v measure_v the_o two_o prophet_n mourn_v and_o the_o woman_n lie_v hide_v in_o the_o wilderness_n as_o in_o the_o 11_o chapter_n second_o verse_n and_o 12._o chapter_n six_o verse_n from_o whence_o the_o beginning_n of_o all_o these_o be_v to_o be_v judge_v the_o same_o at_o one_o time_n the_o church_n be_v banish_v the_o prophet_n wear_v sackcloth_n and_o the_o beast_n or_o antichrist_n be_v bear_v to_o wit_n in_o that_o first_o refresh_v after_o the_o public_a persecution_n about_o the_o year_n 300_o as_o before_o have_v be_v say_v but_o shall_v there_o be_v also_o the_o same_o end_n shall_v the_o beast_n be_v deprive_v of_o all_o power_n to_o do_v and_o the_o woman_n return_v our_o of_o the_o wilderness_n together_o this_o peradventure_o be_v against_o it_o that_o after_o the_o two_o and_o forty_o month_n end_v he_o make_v war_n with_o the_o two_o prophet_n and_o overcome_v they_o which_o be_v a_o thing_n of_o no_o small_a power_n as_o we_o have_v show_v in_o the_o 11._o chapter_n verse_n 7._o furthermore_o there_o remain_v yet_o a_o war_n far_o a_o way_n the_o most_o grievous_a to_o come_v long_o after_o those_o month_n as_o we_o shall_v see_v after_o in_o the_o 16._o chapter_n last_o of_o all_o if_o there_o be_v the_o same_o end_n of_o the_o month_n in_o regard_n of_o the_o beast_n which_o there_o be_v of_o the_o woman_n how_o shall_v he_o have_v power_n to_o do_v two_o and_o forty_o month_n see_v some_o great_a part_n of_o they_o do_v lay_v sick_a yea_o as_o it_o be_v dead_a by_o mean_n of_o his_o wound_a head_n this_o space_n than_o seem_v to_o contain_v the_o whole_a tyranny_n of_o antichrist_n so_o as_o that_o time_n when_o the_o wound_n be_v green_a be_v take_v away_o from_o it_o but_o we_o have_v already_o show_v that_o this_o sickly_a time_n be_v end_v with_o the_o reign_n of_o the_o goth_n in_o the_o 3._o ver_fw-la which_o continue_v a_o hundred_o and_o forty_o year_n therefore_o if_o we_o take_v away_o these_o year_n from_o the_o month_n of_o the_o woman_n lie_v hide_v we_o shall_v find_v that_o at_o the_o end_n of_o this_o lurk_a to_o with_o at_o the_o year_n 1546._o that_o 37._o month_n &_o ten_o day_n only_o of_o the_o flourish_a kingdom_n of_o antichrist_n be_v pass_v there_o be_v want_v therefore_o to_o this_o 5._o month_n &_o 20._o day_n which_o if_o we_o shall_v count_v from_o the_o year_n 1546._o the_o last_o end_n of_o antichrist_n shall_v come_v out_o at_o the_o year_n 1686._o or_o there_o about_o for_o so_o we_o shall_v learn_v from_o other_o scripture_n that_o he_o shall_v utter_o perish_v about_o that_o time_n it_o may_v be_v that_o his_o destruction_n shall_v prevent_v this_o term_n for_o neither_o do_v i_o now_o reckon_v curious_o neither_o peradventure_o do_v the_o history-writer_n number_v the_o year_n so_o faithful_o as_o be_v meet_v but_o it_o shall_v not_o be_v grant_v he_o to_o proceed_v further_o the_o further_a space_n be_v set_v down_o by_o i_o but_o peradventure_o these_o month_n be_v not_o the_o space_n of_o time_n from_o the_o first_o beginning_n unto_o the_o last_o end_n of_o the_o beast_n but_o only_o the_o former_a year_n of_o his_o reign_n as_o many_o as_o may_v suffice_v to_o manifest_v he_o abundant_o to_o all_o man_n in_o which_o respect_n as_o they_o begin_v together_o with_o the_o month_n and_o day_n of_o the_o woman_n and_o prophet_n so_o also_o they_o have_v a_o end_n together_o the_o mention_n of_o the_o war_n with_o the_o sancts_n beneath_o in_o the_o 17._o verse_n confirm_v this_o sense_n which_o war_n we_o have_v declare_v to_o have_v befall_v at_o the_o end_n of_o these_o month_n in_o chap._n 11.7_o from_o which_o exposition_n the_o beast_n be_v say_v to_o have_v power_n to_o do_v two_o and_o forty_o month_n of_o the_o most_o part_n of_o these_o month_n because_o that_o small_a distance_n of_o time_n in_o which_o he_o shall_v hide_v himself_o by_o reason_n of_o his_o wound_a head_n shall_v have_v a_o very_a little_a reckon_v make_v of_o it_o in_o respect_n of_o the_o whole_a number_n neither_o be_v the_o power_n which_o shall_v be_v afterward_o like_v to_o that_o of_o former_a time_n as_o the_o experience_n of_o this_o time_n prove_v sufficient_o wherein_o we_o see_v the_o pope_n force_n since_o that_o war_n be_v make_v that_o be_v since_o the_o council_n of_o trent_n be_v become_v a_o great_a deal_n feeble_a and_o weak_a so_o that_o his_o power_n be_v almost_o nothing_o to_o that_o which_o it_o be_v in_o former_a age_n this_o latter_a be_v more_o plain_a wherefore_o it_o please_v i_o the_o more_o yet_o notwithstanding_o i_o will_v not_o hide_v any_o thing_n as_o much_o as_o in_o i_o lay_v where_o i_o shall_v see_v the_o least_o doubt_n that_o either_o myself_o may_v find_v out_o the_o truth_n or_o at_o least_o wise_a may_v stir_v up_o other_o to_o search_v it_o out_o 6_o therefore_o he_o open_v his_o mouth_n to_o blasphemy_n hitherto_o have_v be_v the_o give_a power_n now_o the_o thing_n itself_o be_v perform_v these_o two_o be_v distinguish_v because_o the_o hey_o of_o impiety_n shall_v not_o be_v look_v for_o the_o first_o day_n but_o he_o shall_v come_v to_o it_o by_o certene_a degree_n and_o in_o process_n of_o time_n but_o first_o he_o prepare_v himself_o to_o blaspheme_v god_n and_o his_o name_n afterward_o his_o temple_n last_o of_o all_o those_o that_o dwell_v in_o heaven_n he_o blaspheme_v god_n by_o vaunt_v himself_o to_o be_v god_n not_o as_o other_o prince_n but_o sacrilegious_o beyond_o the_o condition_n of_o mortal_a man_n as_o to_o who_o power_n be_v give_v in_o heaven_n and_o in_o earth_n who_o shall_v rule_v from_o sea_n to_o sea_n and_o from_o the_o river_n to_o the_o end_n of_o the_o world_n as_o may_v be_v see_v in_o the_o first_o book_n and_o 7._o chap._n of_o the_o ceremonial_a pontifical_a and_o as_o the_o pope_n sixtus_n confirm_v open_o in_o these_o word_n whosoever_o accus●th_v the_o pope_n shall_v never_o be_v forgive_v because_o he_o that_o sin_v against_o the_o holy_a ghost_n shall_v never_o beforgve_v neither_o in_o this_o nor_o in_o the_o life_n to_o come_v see_v the_o first_o tome_n of_o council_n in_o purgat_fw-la of_o sixtus_n thence_o follow_v that_o which_o boniface_n the_o eight_o sing_v so_o loud_o thus_o we_o declare_v define_v and_o pronounce_v to_o every_o creature_n that_o it_o be_v upon_o necessity_n of_o salvation_n that_o they_o be_v subject_a to_o the_o pope_n of_o rome_n extrav_n of_o maiorit_fw-la &_o ob_v one_o holy_a second_o he_o open_v his_o mouth_n against_o the_o tabernacle_n that_o be_v the_o true_a church_n of_o god_n lie_v hide_v and_o be_v as_o a_o stranger_n on_o the_o earth_n for_o this_o tabernacle_n be_v the_o same_o that_o the_o temple_n be_v in_o chap._n 11.1_o the_o dwell_a place_n of_o god_n converse_v with_o his_o people_n in_o the_o desert_n which_o show_v evident_o at_o what_o time_n chief_o he_o shall_v cast_v out_o these_o blasphemy_n to_o wit_n when_o the_o church_n shall_v dwell_v in_o the_o wilderness_n and_o shall_v be_v know_v only_o to_o a_o few_o obscure_a
of_o this_o sermon_n where_o he_o make_v mention_v only_o of_o the_o mark●_n of_o his_o name_n it_o be_v because_o this_o badge_n be_v common_a not_o only_o to_o they_o who_o be_v mark_v in_o the_o forehead_n but_o also_o to_o they_o who_o receive_v the_o mark_n in_o their_o hand_n wherefore_o o_o you_o papist_n consider_v diligent_o how_o horrible_a punishment_n abide_v you_o unless_o you_o forsake_v the_o pope_n of_o rome_n these_o sting_a word_n of_o martin_n luther_n be_v not_o of_o a_o man_n and_o of_o a_o angry_a adversary_n but_o which_o the_o holy_a ghost_n minister_v unto_o he_o you_o see_v that_o the_o man_n be_v send_v from_o the_o camp_n of_o christ_n himself_o and_o think_v not_o that_o these_o threat_n be_v dead_a with_o he_o but_o let_v your_o ear_n ring_v with_o the_o same_o continual_o for_o they_o live_v at_o this_o day_n and_o shall_v no_o less_o have_v their_o force_n for_o ever_o threaten_v eternal_a destruction_n to_o every_o one_o who_o do_v yet_o worship_v that_o romish_a idol_n yea_o a_o more_o grievous_a punishment_n be_v prepare_v for_o man_n by_o how_o much_o the_o ungodliness_n of_o the_o pope_n chair_n be_v more_o apparent_a let_v every_o one_o hear_v who_o regard_v his_o eternal_a salvation_n 12_o here_o be_v the_o patience_n of_o the_o saint_n these_o thing_n perteine_a to_o consolation_n which_o the_o angel_n use_v with_o the_o same_o as_o a_o conclusion_n shut_v up_o his_o sermon_n albeit_o they_o may_v be_v the_o word_n of_o john_n add_v these_o thing_n after_o his_o manner_n like_o a_o acclamation_n but_o it_o skill_v little_a who_o of_o these_o two_o they_o be_v the_o speech_n be_v defective_a for_o here_o be_v the_o trial_n of_o the_o patience_n of_o the_o saint_n here_o be_v the_o trial_n of_o they_o that_o keep_v the_o commandment_n of_o god_n for_o now_o it_o shall_v appear_v who_o be_v endue_v with_o true_a patience_n and_o who_o perform_v the_o duty_n of_o unfeigned_a godliness_n antichrist_n shall_v be_v drive_v into_o such_o rage_n by_o the_o preach_n of_o luther_n that_o it_o be_v neddfull_a for_o man_n to_o be_v godly_a indeed_o that_o will_v endure_v stout_o his_o assault_n and_o yet_o not_o forsake_v their_o profession_n of_o which_o fury_n germany_n be_v witness_n which_o from_o hence_o do_v whole_o abound_v with_o murder_n &_o the_o blood_n of_o the_o godly_a chap._n 11.7_o and_o no_o less_o our_o england_n for_o her_o part_n which_o they_o every_o where_o do_v burn_v with_o the_o fire_n of_o the_o faithful_a what_o be_v the_o horrible_a sloughter_n of_o france_n the_o ash_n of_o merindoll_n &_o cabrieres_n be_v a_o sign_n of_o most_o outrageous_a cruelty_n now_o be_v there_o need_v of_o virtue_n without_o which_o none_o can_v stand_v and_o that_o we_o may_v know_v in_o how_o great_a dan●er_n thing_n be_v we_o read_v that_o the_o very_a captain_n &_o standerdbearer_n quake_v for_o fear_n how_o timorous_a be_v h._n melancthon_n until_o luther_n raise_v he_o up_o &_o comfort_v he_o the_o like_a fear_n without_o doubt_n appal_a many_o man_n 13_o then_o i_o hear_v a_o voice_n from_o heaven_n the_o other_o consolation_n be_v of_o a_o voice_n send_v from_o heaven_n for_o to_o the_o end_n that_o the_o saint_n shall_v be_v more_o prompt_a to_o undergo_v danger_n it_o be_v avouch_v from_o heaven_n that_o the_o utmost_a trouble_n which_o the_o wicked_a can_v bring_v upon_o the_o faithful_a be_v present_a happiness_n to_o they_o and_o that_o it_o shall_v not_o be_v in_o vain_a although_o it_o seem_v otherwise_o to_o the_o world_n that_o they_o do_v throw_v themselves_o into_o so_o great_a peril_n for_o the_o truth_n sake_n for_o their_o work_n shall_v follow_v they_o of_o which_o they_o shall_v receive_v straightway_o a_o most_o sweet_a fruit_n and_o obtain_v at_o length_n a_o most_o bless_a and_o ample_a reward_n neither_o be_v it_o without_o cause_n that_o there_o be_v so_o express_a mention_n of_o the_o time_n from_o this_o time_n from_o now_o that_o i_o may_v so_o say_v the_o common_a translation_n have_v from_o now_o theod._n beza_n think_v that_o this_o member_n be_v to_o be_v join_v necessary_o with_o bless_a to_o which_o he_o add_v next_o bless_v from_o hence_o forth_o etc._n etc._n but_o it_o seem_v that_o it_o be_v not_o to_o be_v put_v out_o of_o the_o place_n which_o the_o spirit_n advise_o give_v to_o it_o join_v it_o with_o which_o die_n bless_a be_v the_o dead_a which_o die_v in_o the_o lord_n from_o henceforth_o not_o but_o that_o the_o dead_a in_o former_a age_n also_o be_v bless_v but_o because_o these_o time_n require_v necessary_o this_o special_a comfort_n as_o long_o as_o they_o have_v to_o do_v with_o the_o heathen_a persecute_v christ_n in_o his_o member_n profess_o no_o man_n can_v doubt_v but_o that_o he_o ought_v to_o spend_v his_o life_n in_o that_o cause_n but_o in_o the_o combat_n with_o they_o who_o boast_v that_o they_o alone_o be_v true_a christian_n just_o the_o more_o simple_a may_v doubt_v whether_o they_o shall_v resist_v unto_o blood_n therefore_o to_o the_o end_n that_o the_o spirit_n may_v take_v away_o this_o scruple_n and_o that_o the_o faithful_a shall_v not_o doubt_v to_o die_v in_o this_o conflict_n he_o pronounce_v they_o happy_a who_o die_v from_o henceforth_o as_o though_o he_o shall_v say_v a_o crown_n of_o celestial_a glory_n do_v remain_v no_o less_o for_o all_o those_o who_o die_v in_o the_o fight_n against_o the_o beast_n then_o for_o those_o who_o for_o christ_n sake_n be_v slay_v before_o time_n by_o the_o heathen_n word_n full_a of_o comfort_n and_o so_o indeed_o it_o come_v to_o pass_v in_o the_o church_n restore_v after_o the_o year_n 1543_o after_o the_o parliament_n of_o aquen_n against_o they_o of_o merindoll_n and_o cabrier_n &_o many_o other_o have_v suffer_v calamity_n in_o france_n when_o a_o rumour_n also_o be_v spread_v abroad_o of_o the_o entreprise_n of_o the_o emperor_n and_o of_o the_o pope_n against_o religion_n for_o then_o many_o weak_a brethren_n be_v amaze_v at_o the_o danger_n present_a and_o expect_v begin_v to_o think_v by_o dissemble_v their_o religion_n to_o provide_v for_o their_o good_n and_o life_n which_o thing_n fear_v persuade_v they_o to_o be_v lawful_a by_o the_o example_n of_o nicodemus_n against_o this_o great_a fear_n a_o voice_n sound_v from_o heaven_n when_o certain_a writing_n full_a of_o holiness_n be_v publish_v by_o john_n calvin_n of_o avoid_v superstition_n and_o a_o excuse_n to_o the_o nicodemite_n in_o which_o by_o most_o strong_a argument_n he_o disproove_v that_o weakness_n and_o prove_v a_o necessity_n of_o testify_v our_o religion_n open_o whatsoever_o danger_n shall_v be_v near_a at_o hand_n that_o the_o glory_n of_o god_n ought_v to_o be_v more_o precious_a to_o we_o than_o this_o frail_a life_n which_o to_o speak_v proper_o be_v no_o other_o thing_n then_o a_o shadow_n which_o judgement_n other_o holy_a man_n also_o confirm_v by_o their_o writing_n philip_n melancthon_n martin_n bucer_n peter_n martyr_n and_o the_o whole_a church_n of_o zuriche_n as_o we_o may_v see_v in_o the_o opuscules_n of_o calvin_n this_o be_v that_o voice_n from_o heaven_n 14_o and_o i_o look_v and_o behold_v a_o white_a cloud_n thus_o far_o the_o three_o angel_n fight_v by_o the_o word_n now_o a_o fact_n be_v add_v and_o engine_n be_v bring_v forth_o to_o begin_v the_o ruin_n of_o babylon_n which_o preparation_n be_v double_a the_o harvest_n &_o vintage_n the_o harvest_n be_v the_o gather_n of_o the_o good_a according_a to_o that_o say_n of_o christ_n the_o harvest_n be_v great_a but_o the_o labourer_n be_v few_o pray_v therefore_o the_o lord_n of_o the_o harvest_n that_o he_o will_v send_v forth_o labourer_n into_o his_o harvest_n mat._n 9.37_o and_o it_o be_v set_v forth_o in_o three_o verse_n the_o preparation_n whereof_o be_v in_o two_o angel_n one_o the_o prince_n ver_fw-la 14_o and_o the_o other_o an_o administer_v ver_fw-la 15._o who_o labour_n be_v join_v together_o as_o a_o double_a thunder_n apal_v with_o a_o double_a crack_n one_o by_o &_o by_o follow_v a_o other_o afterward_o follow_v the_o execution_n ver_fw-la 16._o as_o touch_v the_o word_n a_o cloud_n hang_v aloft_o signifi_v a_o certain_a highness_n such_o as_o be_v honour_n dignity_n magistrate_n principality_n and_o such_o like_a to_o which_o a_o high_a place_n be_v grant_v among_o man_n though_o not_o the_o high_a see_v the_o cloud_n do_v stay_v beneath_o the_o sky_n which_o signification_n be_v confirm_v by_o that_o which_o be_v speak_v before_o of_o the_o two_o prophet_n who_o rise_v from_o the_o dead_a go_v up_o into_o the_o heaven_n by_o a_o cloud_n that_o be_v be_v earry_v unto_o the_o due_a height_n of_o dignity_n by_o the_o help_n of_o certain_a inferior_a prince_n chap._n 11.12_o a_o white_a clear_a and_o cheerful_a cloud_n betoken_v
that_o alexander_n himself_o never_o boast_v of_o any_o such_o wonder_n in_o his_o epistle_n arianus_n write_v that_o usual_o there_o be_v no_o way_n to_o pass_v through_o the_o sea_n near_o phaselis_n but_o when_o the_o north_n wind_n blow_v which_o blow_v vehement_o when_o alexander_n go_v that_o way_n that_o they_o seem_v not_o without_o god_n power_n to_o have_v yield_v they_o a_o easy_a passage_n but_o strabo_n book_n 14_o write_v most_o plain_o that_o the_o soldier_n traveil_v all_o the_o day_n even_o up_o to_o the_o navel_n in_o the_o water_n so_o then_o alexander_n pass_v through_o the_o water_n that_o be_v shollow_v and_o not_o quite_o dry_v up_o neither_o do_v i_o think_v can_v it_o be_v find_v in_o any_o record_n that_o such_o a_o thing_n do_v ever_o happen_v to_o any_o other_o people_n than_o the_o jew_n the_o vanity_n of_o writer_n may_v feign_v many_o thing_n but_o the_o scripture_n do_v challenge_v this_o as_o peculiar_a to_o this_o nation_n only_o i_o will_v say_v say_v god_n to_o the_o deep_a be_v dry_a and_o i_o will_v dry_v up_o thy_o flood_n isa_n 44.27_o and_o again_o be_v not_o thou_o the_o same_o which_o dry_v up_o the_o sea_n even_o the_o water_n of_o the_o great_a deep_a make_v the_o deep_n of_o the_o sea_n to_o be_v a_o way_n for_o the_o redeem_v to_o pass_v over_o isa_n 51.10_o and_o lest_o some_o shall_v think_v this_o miracle_n be_v only_o for_o the_o time_n pass_v and_o not_o such_o to_o be_v look_v for_o ever_o after_o he_o add_v in_o the_o next_o verse_n so_o the_o redeem_v of_o the_o lord_n shall_v return_v and_o come_v with_o joy_n into_o zion_n etc._n etc._n and_o in_o isa_n 63.11_o where_o shall_v he_o be_v that_o bring_v these_o up_o out_o of_o the_o sea_n with_o the_o shepherd_n of_o his_o flock_n which_o cleave_v the_o water_n for_o th●se_a to_o make_v himself_o a_o everlasting_a name_n which_o lead_v these_o through_o the_o deep_a as_o a_o horse_n in_o the_o wilderness_n so_o that_o they_o stumble_v not_o it_o be_v no_o marvel_n therefore_o if_o the_o peculiar_a note_n &_o ensign_n of_o this_o nation_n only_o be_v put_v for_o the_o man_n themselves_o but_o what_o need_v there_o a_o way_n to_o be_v prepare_v for_o they_o shall_v they_o return_v again_o to_o jerusalem_fw-la there_o be_v nothing_o more_o sure_a the_o prophet_n plain_o confirm_v it_o and_o beat_v often_o upon_o it_o yet_o not_o to_o the_o end_n that_o the_o ceremonial_a worship_n shall_v be_v restore_v but_o that_o the_o mercy_n of_o god_n may_v shine_v unto_o all_o the_o world_n in_o give_v to_o a_o nation_n now_o scatter_v over_o all_o the_o face_n of_o the_o earth_n &_o dwell_v no_o where_n but_o by_o leave_n their_o father_n habitation_n wherein_o they_o shall_v serve_v christ_n pure_o and_o sincere_o according_a to_o his_o own_o ordinance_n only_o a_o thing_n of_o old_a common_o speak_v of_o by_o the_o ancient_a jew_n which_o they_o understand_v by_o the_o prophet_n although_o but_o narrow_o and_o through_o the_o lattisse_n whereupon_o it_o be_v beray_v with_o old_a wife_n fable_n both_o in_o age_n past_a and_o so_o be_v now_o at_o this_o day_n the_o feighn_v esdras_n see_v some_o sparkle_n of_o this_o truth_n which_o he_o overwhelm_v with_o so_o many_o and_o great_a fiction_n that_o he_o have_v need_n be_v a_o wary_a and_o attentive_a reader_n and_o one_o of_o no_o mean_a judgement_n that_o will_v gather_v gold_n out_o of_o that_o confuse_a heap_n they_o enter_v in_o say_v he_o speak_v of_o the_o ten_o tribe_n that_o be_v lead_v captive_n at_o the_o narrow_a passage_n of_o the_o river_n euphrates_n for_o the_o most_o high_a than_o show_v they_o sign_n and_o stay_v the_o spring_n of_o the_o river_n till_o they_o be_v pass_v over_o 4._o esdras_n 13.43.44_o a_o jewish_a fable_n but_o near_a to_o the_o truth_n be_v that_o which_o there_o follow_v ver_fw-la 47._o the_o most_o high_a shall_v hold_v still_o the_o spring_n of_o the_o river_n again_o that_o they_o may_v go_v through_o etc._n etc._n which_o agree_v with_o this_o place_n &_o may_v both_o of_o they_o be_v understand_v metaphorical_o though_o nothing_o let_v why_o it_o may_v not_o please_v god_n again_o to_o show_v his_o ancient_a power_n of_o dry_a water_n up_o extraordinary_o see_v therefore_o it_o be_v certain_a that_o this_o nation_n shall_v earnest_o flock_v unto_o the_o gospel_n and_o that_o in_o the_o last_o time_n as_o paul_n teach_v rom._n 11.25_o and_o the_o last_o period_n of_o thing_n be_v of_o the_o vial_n &_o it_o be_v not_o likely_a that_o such_o a_o wonderful_a matter_n shall_v have_v no_o mention_n at_o all_o in_o this_o clear_a prophecy_n unto_o which_o also_o here_o be_v add_v the_o proper_a ensign_n of_o this_o nation_n for_o who_o only_a sake_n both_o sea_n &_o river_n as_o we_o read_v be_v dry_v up_o i_o be_o not_o altogether_o unadvised_a in_o suppose_v that_o this_o be_v the_o only_a matter_n here_o in_o hand_n which_o must_v either_o be_v find_v in_o this_o place_n or_o be_v whole_o omit_v in_o this_o book_n wherefore_o after_o rome_n be_v overthrow_v and_o cut_v off_o there_o shall_v be_v a_o common_a bruit_n of_o this_o new_a christian_a people_n at_o the_o hear_n whereof_o the_o gentile_n shall_v be_v astonish_v but_o what_o be_v the_o jew_n king_n why_o not_o see_v all_o christian_n be_v king_n rev._n 1.6_o and_o the_o fowr_n and_o twenty_o elder_n which_o represente_a the_o whole_a company_n of_o the_o faithful_a do_v all_o wear_v crown_n chap._n 4.4_o and_o this_o magnificent_a name_n do_v the_o spirit_n give_v they_o because_o it_o shall_v be_v very_o honourable_a after_o so_o many_o age_n and_o so_o stiff_a stubbornness_n of_o that_o nation_n for_o they_o to_o come_v again_o as_o it_o be_v by_o recovery_n of_o law_n unto_o the_o truth_n and_o religious_o and_o holy_o with_o all_o observance_n to_o honour_v the_o same_o have_v their_o incredulous_a and_o obstinate_a heart_n subdue_v but_o beside_o this_o the_o whole_a east_n shall_v obey_v they_o that_o not_o without_o cause_n be_v this_o people_n call_v king_n in_o respect_n of_o their_o long_a and_o large_a dominion_n &_o empire_n but_o they_o seem_v to_o be_v call_v plain_o king_n in_o isay_n 24.21_o if_o we_o diligent_o mark_v the_o word_n and_o meaning_n of_o the_o place_n and_o it_o shall_v be_v say_v he_o in_o that_o day_n the_o lord_n will_v visit_v the_o host_n of_o the_o high_a in_o the_o high_a place_n and_o the_o king_n of_o the_o earth_n upon_o the_o earth_n and_o they_o shall_v be_v gather_v with_o a_o gather_n as_o a_o prisoner_n into_o a_o pit_n and_o shall_v be_v close_v up_o in_o the_o close-place_n and_o after_o many_o day_n shall_v they_o be_v visit_v and_o the_o moon_n shall_v be_v abash_v and_o the_o sun_n ashamed_a when_o the_o lord_n of_o host_n shall_v reign_v in_o mount_n zion_n and_o in_o jerusalem_n and_o shall_v be_v glorious_a before_o his_o ancient_n &_o the_o king_n of_o the_o earth_n be_v all_o one_o who_o after_o be_v gather_v into_o the_o pit_n after_o many_o day_n be_v visit_v and_o at_o who_o deliverance_n the_o moon_n be_v abash_v etc._n etc._n which_o last_o word_n be_v certain_o mean_v of_o the_o full_a restore_n of_o the_o jew_n wherefore_o the_o first_o word_n intend_v also_o the_o same_o who_o god_n in_o heavy_a indignation_n because_o they_o refuse_v his_o son_n do_v thrust_v into_o the_o pit_n or_o dungeon_n for_o many_o age_n together_o and_o keep_v they_o close_v up_o in_o a_o very_a hard_a prison_n but_o at_o length_n after_o many_o day_n he_o will_v visit_v these_o prisoner_n and_o bring_v they_o out_o of_o the_o gayl_n for_o who_o fervent_a zele_n and_o singular_a study_n of_o true_a godliness_n the_o churchche_n of_o the_o gentile_n as_o the_o moon_n &_o sun_n shall_v be_v abash_v at_o this_o great_a brightness_n they_o be_v call_v the_o host_n of_o the_o high_a in_o the_o high_a because_o the_o jew_n be_v the_o peculiar_a people_n of_o the_o high_a god_n and_o of_o his_o church_n which_o be_v heavenly_a whereupon_o they_o be_v often_o call_v in_o daniel_n qaddische_a hheljonin_n the_o saint_n of_o the_o high_a dan._n 7.22_o etc._n etc._n but_o this_o be_v enough_o to_o find_v out_o the_o meaning_n of_o this_o place_n i_o may_v not_o now_o stand_v long_o upon_o it_o i_o have_v handle_v it_o the_o more_o at_o large_a for_o to_o give_v occasion_n unto_o our_o man_n to_o mind_v these_o thing_n more_o diligent_o these_o king_n come_v from_o the_o east_n because_o the_o great_a multitude_n of_o jew_n be_v in_o those_o country_n and_o these_o first_o of_o all_o shall_v see_v the_o truth_n and_o embrace_v the_o study_n of_o it_o but_o thou_o will_v say_v the_o temple_n be_v shut_v until_o the_o seven_o plague_n be_v fufil_v which_o we_o show_v to_o be_v
that_o the_o fall_n of_o the_o world_n and_o time_n of_o antichrist_n be_v at_o hand_n jerom_n in_o his_o epistle_n to_o ageruchia_n concern_v monogamie_n say_v he_o that_o do_v hold_v be_v take_v out_o of_o the_o way_n and_o do_v we_o not_o understand_v that_o antichrist_n be_v near_a also_o gregory_n lib._n 4._o epist_n 38._o all_o thing_n foretell_v be_v come_v to_o pass_v the_o king_n of_o pride_n be_v near_o for_o if_o antichrist_n be_v near_o thirteen_o hundred_o year_n ago_o or_o a_o thousand_o at_o the_o least_o as_o be_v evident_a by_o these_o testimony_n how_o can_v it_o be_v that_o he_o be_v not_o yet_o come_v you_o answer_v that_o the_o ancient_a father_n be_v deceive_v with_o opinion_n that_o the_o world_n end_n be_v near_a than_o in_o deed_n it_o be_v and_o that_o therefore_o antichrist_n be_v then_o near_o in_o false_a opinion_n not_o in_o very_a deed_n whereunto_o i_o say_v if_o the_o ancient_a father_n have_v ground_v their_o sentence_n upon_o the_o persuasion_n only_o of_o the_o world_n end_n it_o must_v needs_o have_v be_v as_o they_o err_v in_o this_o so_o also_o they_o have_v err_v in_o antichrist_n but_o see_v they_o persuade_v themselves_o so_o by_o other_o argument_n and_o gather_v not_o so_o much_o that_o antichrist_n be_v near_o because_o the_o end_n of_o the_o world_n be_v at_o hand_n as_o that_o the_o world_n end_n be_v at_o hand_n because_o antichrist_n be_v near_o needs_o must_v that_o be_v firm_a and_o stable_a which_o they_o avouch_v of_o this_o thing_n unless_o beside_o that_o vain_a opinion_n you_o can_v prov_v the_o other_o reason_n also_o to_o be_v light_n but_o it_o be_v manifest_a by_o their_o word_n that_o they_o have_v suspicion_n of_o the_o world_n end_n by_o antichrist_n come_v not_o contraryweise_v for_o jerome_n reason_v from_o the_o impediment_n take_v away_o that_o antichrist_n be_v near_o he_o that_o hold_v say_v he_o be_v take_v out_o of_o the_o way_n and_o do_v we_o not_o understand_v that_o antichrist_n be_v near_a gregory_n by_o the_o fulfil_n all_o thing_n that_o be_v foretell_v than_o which_o what_o can_v be_v a_o more_o certain_a argument_n and_o you_o confess_v that_o all_o the_o ancient_n mind_v the_o evilnes_n of_o their_o time_n suspect_v that_o antichrist_n time_n be_v at_o hand_n they_o do_v not_o therefore_o upon_o suspicion_n of_o the_o end_n conclude_v of_o antichrist_n for_o the_o last_o end_n be_v never_o make_v a_o sign_n of_o thing_n go_v before_o but_o the_o thing_n that_o go_v before_o be_v determine_v to_o be_v sign_n of_o the_o last_o end_n the_o end_n see_v it_o be_v the_o last_o and_o the_o most_o unknown_a even_o to_o the_o angel_n in_o heaven_n and_o to_o the_o son_n of_o man_n himself_o mark_v 13.32_o can_v give_v no_o fore-perceiving_a of_o thing_n that_o be_v before_o &_o more_o know_v by_o sure_a argument_n therefore_o they_o know_v that_o antichrist_n be_v at_o hand_n but_o that_o which_o they_o join_v thereto_o of_o the_o last_o end_n rely_v but_o upon_o a_o unsure_a &_o humane_a conjecture_n they_o have_v receive_v from_o clemens_n alexandrinus_n strom._n lib._n 1._o a_o false_a chronologie_n of_o five_o thousand_o seven_o hundred_o four_o score_n &_o four_o year_n two_o month_n and_o twelve_o day_n pass_v from_o adam_n unto_o the_o death_n of_o commodus_n the_o emperor_n thereunto_o be_v add_v a_o opinion_n of_o the_o world_n durance_n six_o thousand_o year_n whereupon_o cyprian_n in_o the_o preface_n de_fw-mi exhort_v martyr_n say_v the_o six_o thousand_o year_n be_v now_o almost_o fulfil_v since_o the_o devil_n impugn_a man_n and_o lactantius_n lib._n 7._o cap._n 25._o divinar_n institut_fw-la all_o expectation_n seem_v to_o be_v more_o than_o of_o two_o hundred_o year_n add_v unto_o these_o the_o conjecture_n of_o the_o world_n speedy_a end_n after_o antichrist_n come_v and_o then_o it_o will_v easy_o appear_v that_o great_a difference_n there_o be_v between_o those_o thing_n which_o be_v handle_v of_o antichrist_n and_o of_o the_o end_n of_o the_o world_n the_o first_o they_o have_v find_v out_o by_o many_o prophecy_n and_o undoubted_a sign_n the_o late_a they_o do_v persuade_v themselves_o by_o some_o likelihood_n of_o truth_n and_o the_o infirm_a authority_n of_o man_n the_o like_a we_o do_v see_v in_o christ_n disciple_n which_o expect_v as_o we_o know_v a_o temporal_a kingdom_n yet_o when_o they_o preach_v that_o christ_n be_v come_v &_o that_o the_o kingdom_n be_v they_o to_o be_v restore_v to_o israel_n shall_v any_o which_o see_v not_o the_o kingdom_n restore_v disannul_v their_o faith_n touch_v christ_n come_n sure_o he_o shall_v do_v they_o wrong_n for_o that_o christ_n be_v come_v they_o know_v by_o most_o sure_a argument_n which_o can_v not_o deceive_v but_o their_o opinion_n of_o the_o temporal_a kingdom_n they_o draw_v from_o the_o dregs_n of_o the_o common_a error_n even_o so_o the_o ancient_a father_n understand_v by_o true_a sign_n from_o the_o scripture_n that_o antichrist_n be_v at_o the_o door_n but_o that_o which_o they_o affirm_v of_o the_o last_o end_n be_v of_o their_o own_o &_o shall_v not_o diminish_v the_o credit_n of_o that_o wherewith_o it_o be_v join_v therefore_o you_o have_v not_o escape_v by_o this_o your_o answer_n but_o by_o the_o sentence_n of_o the_o ancient_a father_n it_o remain_v firm_a and_o steadfast_a that_o antichrist_n be_v come_v and_o therefore_o it_o be_v not_o for_o nought_o that_o the_o bishop_n of_o florence_n one_o of_o your_o own_o man_n open_o avouch_v five_o hundred_o year_n ago_o that_o antichrist_n be_v then_o come_v to_o stop_v who_o mouth_n the_o council_n of_o florence_n be_v gather_v but_o you_o think_v it_o better_o that_o the_o fame_n of_o this_o council_n shall_v rather_o come_v unto_o posterity_n than_o that_o the_o act_n thereof_o shall_v come_v unto_o their_o knowledge_n as_o touch_v the_o late_a man_n in_o the_o first_o place_n you_o mention_v the_o samosatenian_o of_o hungary_n which_o who_o i_o will_v have_v nothing_o to_o do_v whatsoever_o they_o think_v or_o think_v not_o be_v all_o one_o to_o i_o until_o they_o return_v unto_o soundness_n of_o mind_n the_o other_o learned_a man_n have_v a_o threefold_a difference_n illyricus_n chytraeus_n and_o luther_n make_v antichrist_n come_v to_o be_v about_o the_o year_n of_o our_o l._n 500_o bullinger_n at_o the_o year_n 763._o musculus_fw-la about_o the_o year_n 1200._o sure_o the_o second_o rise_v of_o the_o beast_n in_o who_o territory_n they_o remain_v do_v cast_v so_o strong_a a_o smell_n to_o those_o prudent_a man_n that_o they_o can_v retch_v their_o mind_n to_o no_o further_a thing_n even_o as_o hound_n which_o when_o they_o fall_v upon_o the_o den_n of_o the_o wild_a beast_n do_v run_v with_o full_a course_n and_o cry_v not_o scent_v any_o more_o the_o several_a footstep_n therefore_o for_o the_o most_o part_n they_o transfer_v unto_o this_o second_o rise_v the_o thing_n which_o belong_v to_o the_o first_o and_o bring_v in_o here_o some_o other_o thing_n that_o be_v not_o to_o the_o purpose_n nevertheless_o this_o light_a aberration_n of_o the_o time_n of_o his_o rise_n take_v not_o away_o his_o rise_n but_o by_o their_o voice_n and_o cry_n we_o know_v that_o antichrist_n be_v though_o the_o moment_n when_o first_o he_o begin_v to_o be_v be_v hide_v from_o they_o let_v we_o therefore_o run_v through_o your_o answer_n unto_o every_o of_o they_o that_o you_o may_v perceive_v how_o they_o have_v not_o so_o much_o err_v as_o yourself_o have_v labour_v in_o vain_a in_o oppugn_v their_o judgement_n second_o therefore_o you_o encounter_v with_o illyricus_n who_o say_v antichrist_n be_v they_o bear_v when_o phocas_n grant_v to_o the_o bishop_n of_o rome_n that_o he_o shall_v be_v call_v head_n of_o the_o whole_a church_n which_o fall_v out_o in_o the_o year_n 606._o you_o answer_v that_o he_o be_v not_o bear_v at_o this_o time_n for_o two_o cause_n first_o because_o antichrist_n temporal_a reign_n of_o 666._o year_n which_o illyricus_n will_v have_v to_o begin_v at_o that_o arise_v shall_v now_o long_o since_o be_v end_v and_o antichrist_n shall_v be_v dead_a second_o that_o by_o his_o spiritual_a reign_n which_o illyricus_n will_v have_v to_o be_v of_o 5260_o year_n the_o centurie_n writer_n may_v exact_o know_v the_o end_n of_o the_o world_n contrary_a to_o our_o lord_n word_n acts._n 1_o &_o mat._n 24._o i_o answer_v unto_o the_o first_o it_o be_v a_o foolish_a thing_n which_o you_o gather_v of_o antichrist_n death_n at_o the_o end_n of_o 666._o year_n when_o you_o see_v they_o give_v unto_o he_o a_o spiritual_a reign_n of_o 1260._o year_n can_v any_o one_o reign_n 594._o year_n for_o so_o many_o be_v this_o reign_n prorogue_v beyond_o the_o temporal_a after_o he_o be_v dead_a but_o perhaps_o your_o spiritual_a pope_n have_v no_o more_o vital_a life_n without_o
temporal_a thing_n than_o the_o serpent_n have_v without_o dust_n unto_o the_o second_o i_o answer_v it_o be_v as_o lawful_a for_o the_o centurie_n writer_n exact_o to_o know_v the_o year_n when_o the_o world_n shall_v end_v as_o it_o be_v for_o your_o papist_n to_o know_v the_o very_a day_n do_v not_o you_o reckon_v 1335._o day_n from_o the_o begin_n of_o antichrist_n reign_v unto_o the_o last_o judgement_n shall_v that_o speech_n of_o christ_n touch_v this_o unknown_a day_n have_v no_o long_o place_n than_o till_o antichrist_n come_v mark_v 13.32_o how_o then_o shall_v it_o come_v as_o a_o snare_n upon_o all_o that_o dwell_v on_o the_o face_n of_o all_o the_o earth_n luk._n 21.33_o your_o refutation_n therefore_o be_v nothing_o we_o have_v show_v that_o that_o first_o number_n be_v not_o of_o his_o reign_n but_o of_o his_o name_n &_o that_o the_o other_o be_v to_o be_v count_v from_o the_o first_o come_v of_o antic_a not_o from_o the_o second_o but_o i_o will_v be_v no_o long_o now_o about_o this_o matter_n i_o return_v again_o to_o you_o &_o do_v grant_v that_o which_o you_o strive_v for_o be_v it_o that_o antichrist_n be_v not_o then_o first_o bear_v i_o ask_v this_o onething_n of_o you_o whither_o be_v he_o then_o or_o no_o if_o you_o deny_v he_o then_o to_o be_v i_o thus_o convince_v it_o then_o be_v the_o impediment_n take_v away_o which_o only_o hinder_v his_o come_n as_o jerom_n even_o now_o affirm_v then_o all_o thing_n be_v do_v which_o be_v foretell_v shall_v go_v before_o his_o come_n as_o gregory_n do_v avouch_v then_o be_v there_o a_o universal_a priest_n such_o as_o the_o same_o gregory_n confident_o say_v whosoever_o cale_v himself_o or_o desire_v to_o be_v call_v he_o be_v in_o his_o pride_n the_o forerunner_n of_o antichrist_n lib._n 7._o epist_n 194._o unto_o mauricius_n but_o if_o he_o that_o desire_v such_o a_o name_n be_v the_o forerunner_n of_o antichrist_n what_o shall_v we_o call_v he_o that_o have_v the_o name_n see_v therefore_o antichrist_n be_v at_o that_o time_n now_o look_v you_o how_o he_o be_v not_o yet_o come_v in_o the_o three_o place_n you_o answer_v to_o chytreus_n who_o make_v his_o birth_n to_o be_v about_o the_o same_o time_n especial_o because_o gregory_n at_o this_o time_n establish_v prayer_n to_o saint_n and_o mass_n for_o the_o dead_a etc._n etc._n to_o this_o you_o say_v that_o gregory_n be_v not_o the_o first_o that_o teach_v to_o pray_v unto_o the_o saint_n and_o to_o offer_v mass_n for_o the_o dead_a for_o all_o the_o ancient_a father_n teach_v the_o same_o and_o in_o stead_n of_o all_o you_o bring_v forth_o one_o ambrose_n which_o be_v two_o hundred_o year_n before_o gregory_n i_o answer_v sure_o chytreus_n err_v that_o though_o antichrist_n to_o be_v some_o year_n young_a then_o in_o deed_n he_o be_v he_o be_v much_o more_o ancient_a but_o do_v so_o bear_v his_o age_n that_o as_o a_o other_o cupid_n he_o always_o seem_v to_o be_v a_o child_n for_o the_o man_n be_v deceive_v by_o his_o second_o rise_v whereby_o he_o revive_v from_o the_o dead_a and_o as_o aeson_n of_o a_o old_a man_n become_v a_o young_a so_o he_o from_o youth_n return_v to_o his_o cradle_n neither_o shall_v it_o be_v strange_a to_o have_v he_o then_o account_v first_o who_o then_o seem_v to_o be_v new_a but_o you_o so_o deny_v his_o birth_n as_o you_o add_v year_n to_o antichrist_n &_o take_v none_o away_o as_o if_o you_o shall_v require_v inheritance_n for_o a_o ward_n and_o be_v afraid_a lest_o he_o shall_v go_v too_o late_o out_o of_o his_o wardship_n four_o you_o come_v to_o luther_n who_o make_v a_o double_a come_n of_o antichrist_n one_o with_o a_o spiritual_a sword_n after_o the_o year_n 600._o a_o other_o with_o a_o temporal_a sword_n after_o the_o year_n 1000_o you_o answer_v that_o the_o pope_n depose_a emperor_n and_o make_v war_n before_o the_o thousand_o year_n i_o answer_v therefore_o thou_o luther_n also_o waste_v deceive_v antichrist_n be_v come_v before_o thou_o suppose_v sure_o you_o so_o defend_v the_o pope_n as_o if_o one_o be_v charge_v with_o theft_n to_o avoid_v the_o crime_n shall_v open_o cry_v that_o that_o be_v not_o the_o first_o thing_n that_o he_o have_v steal_v but_o for_o many_o other_o great_a thing_n have_v he_o play_v the_o thief_n before_o you_o fear_v not_o as_o it_o seem_v that_o any_o shall_v afterward_o come_v which_o will_v search_v out_o the_o high_a origine_fw-la of_o antichrist_n five_o bullinger_n so_o expound_v that_o number_n 666._o as_o to_o design_n the_o year_n of_o antichrist_n come_v after_o the_o write_n of_o the_o apocalypse_n namely_o the_o year_n of_o our_o lord_n 763._o to_o which_o you_o answer_v and_o right_o that_o this_o be_v the_o number_n of_o antichrist_n name_n not_o of_o his_o time_n though_o from_o hence_o your_o cause_n have_v but_o little_a help_n for_o although_o he_o be_v not_o then_o first_o bear_v yet_o he_o may_v be_v bear_v before_o which_o sufficient_o show_v that_o you_o false_o do_v avouch_v he_o be_v not_o yet_o come_v six_o musculus_fw-la affirm_v that_o antichrist_n come_v about_o the_o year_n 1200._o move_v hereunto_o by_o bernard_n authority_n who_o say_v after_o many_o other_o thing_n wherewith_o he_o bewail_v the_o wickedness_n of_o those_o time_n it_o remain_v that_o the_o man_n of_o sin_v be_v revel_v serm._n 6._o of_o psal_n 90._o you_o answer_v two_o thing_n first_o that_o bernard_n suspicion_n be_v false_a as_o be_v cyprian_n jeroms_n gregory_n in_o their_o time_n for_o he_o suspect_v by_o the_o evil_n which_o he_o see_v that_o antichrist_n be_v near_o second_o that_o there_o be_v worse_a pope_n without_o any_o comparison_n in_o the_o former_a age_n than_o in_o that_o i_o answer_v to_o the_o first_o you_o fayrlie_o contradict_v the_o apostle_n he_o teach_v that_o the_o apostasy_n go_v before_o antichrist_n and_o that_o he_o shall_v come_v into_o the_o world_n for_o man_n despise_v the_o love_n of_o the_o truth_n declare_v thereby_o that_o there_o be_v no_o more_o evident_a sign_n both_o of_o antichrist_n approach_v &_o reign_v than_o that_o all_o kind_n of_o hypocritical_a impiety_n licentious_o range_v abroad_o you_o will_v have_v bernard_n to_o be_v deceive_v and_o that_o he_o suspect_v by_o the_o evil_n which_o he_o see_v that_o antichrist_n be_v near_o in_o very_a deed_n he_o be_v deceive_v in_o that_o he_o think_v he_o to_o be_v but_o near_o and_o not_o present_a otherwise_o he_o judge_v more_o sincere_o of_o antichrist_n than_o the_o jesuite_n be_v wont_a or_o any_o other_o papist_n unto_o the_o second_o i_o say_v see_v they_o be_v worse_a in_o the_o age_n before_o we_o grant_v you_o that_o his_o first_o birth_n do_v not_o now_o begin_v but_o have_v be_v bring_v forth_o long_o before_o now_o only_o he_o be_v exstant_fw-la and_o thus_o when_o all_o come_v to_o all_o you_o have_v dispute_v this_o question_n as_o if_o one_o shall_v contend_v that_o the_o sun_n be_v not_o rise_v at_o noon_n day_n though_o it_o begin_v to_o shine_v in_o the_o horizon_n at_o six_o a_o clock_n in_o the_o morning_n because_o it_o neither_o rose_n at_o eight_o a_o clock_n as_o one_o affirm_v nor_o at_o nine_o as_o the_o second_o nor_o at_o ten_o as_o the_o three_o avouch_v by_o the_o very_a like_o argument_n you_o and_o you_o will_v persuade_v that_o antichrist_n be_v not_o yet_o come_v chapt._n 4._o against_o the_o first_o demonstration_n from_o the_o universal_a preach_v of_o the_o gospel_n this_o question_n of_o the_o time_n yield_v great_a abundance_n of_o light_n illustrate_v all_o the_o rest_n as_o the_o sun_n with_o his_o beam_n whereupon_o bellarmine_n to_o darken_v this_o same_o have_v prepare_v six_o thick_a cover_n which_o he_o cale_v demonstration_n under_o which_o he_o hope_v to_o be_v draw_v from_o so_o many_o certain_a sign_n as_o he_o say_v of_o antichrist_n come_v whereof_o two_o do_v go_v before_o namely_o 1._o the_o preach_v of_o the_o gospel_n in_o the_o whole_a world_n 2._o and_o the_o desolation_n of_o the_o roman_a empire_n two_o do_v accompany_v it_o namely_o 3._o the_o preach_v of_o henoch_n and_o elias_n 4._o and_o a_o very_a great_a and_o know_a persecution_n two_o do_v follow_v namely_o 5._o the_o destruction_n of_o antichrist_n after_o three_o year_n and_o a_o half_a 6._o and_o the_o end_n of_o the_o world_n none_o of_o which_o say_v he_o we_o see_v as_o yet_o to_o be_v perform_v we_o will_v help_v therefore_o this_o blind_a man_n if_o god_n will_v and_o with_o a_o faithful_a hand_n will_v pull_v the_o scale_n from_o his_o eye_n if_o so_o he_o will_v suffer_v it_o for_o a_o groundwork_n of_o the_o first_o demonstration_n you_o set_v down_o that_o which_o be_v write_v mat._n 24.14_o this_o gospel_n of_o the_o kingdom_n shall_v be_v preach_v in_o the_o whole_a
the_o east_n and_o unto_o all_o the_o country_n round_o about_o by_o who_o wholsomnes_n a_o very_a great_a multitude_n of_o fish_n shall_v be_v engender_v ezech._n 47._o and_o then_o after_o the_o little_a horn_n be_v take_v away_o the_o kingdom_n shall_v be_v give_v to_o one_o like_o the_o son_n of_o man_n that_o all_o people_n nation_n tongue_n may_v serve_v he_o dan._n 7.14_o which_o kingdom_n be_v not_o that_o which_o shall_v be_v in_o heaven_n where_o no_o distinction_n be_v of_o people_n nation_n and_o tongue_n but_o shall_v come_v in_o earth_n and_o be_v administer_v by_o the_o sceptre_n of_o his_o word_n whereupon_o after_o the_o cut_n off_o of_o this_o horn_n which_o man_n common_o do_v interpret_v partly_o of_o antiochus_n partly_o of_o antichrist_n but_o be_v in_o very_a deed_n the_o turk_n who_o shall_v be_v root_v out_o within_o a_o while_n after_o the_o true_a antichrist_n there_o shall_v be_v a_o most_o ample_a promulgation_n of_o the_o gospel_n with_o much_o large_a limit_n than_o ever_o heretofore_o for_o then_o all_o the_o nation_n indeed_o shall_v serve_v he_o psal_n 72.11_o and_o jehovah_n shall_v be_v king_n over_o all_o the_o earth_n and_o in_o that_o day_n shall_v jehovah_n be_v one_o and_o his_o name_n one_o zach._n 14.19_o these_o thing_n and_o many_o such_o like_a do_v make_v it_o plain_n that_o howsoever_o the_o doctrine_n of_o salvation_n survey_v many_o land_n before_o antichrist_n yet_o after_o he_o be_v extinguish_v the_o tent_n of_o the_o sacred_a truth_n shall_v be_v much_o more_o ample_o display_v so_o that_o into_o they_o shall_v assemble_v a_o very_a great_a congregation_n in_o respect_n whereof_o the_o assembly_n of_o former_a time_n have_v be_v small_a or_o rather_o none_o these_o thing_n do_v the_o scripture_n teach_v of_o the_o universal_a preach_n &_o they_o be_v constant_a firm_a sure_a full_o of_o majesty_n power_n mercy_n if_o you_o look_v unto_o god_n and_o if_o you_o turn_v your_o eye_n unto_o ourselves_o they_o be_v no_o less_o full_a of_o all_o joy_n and_o comfort_n whereas_o on_o the_o contrary_a the_o thing_n which_o you_o have_v bring_v be_v either_o uncertayn_a guess_n or_o vain_a fiction_n which_o will_v both_o deceive_v at_o least_o your_o expectation_n and_o in_o the_o mean_a while_n lead_v into_o error_n and_o destruction_n chapt._n 5._o against_o the_o second_o demonstration_n from_o the_o desolation_n of_o the_o roman_a empire_n the_o second_o demonstration_n you_o say_v be_v take_v from_o the_o other_o sign_n that_o go_v before_o the_o time_n of_o antichrist_n which_o shall_v be_v the_o utter_a desolation_n of_o the_o roman_a empire_n which_o see_v it_o yet_o endure_v antichrist_n be_v not_o yet_o come_v hereupon_o you_o take_v in_o hand_n to_o prove_v two_o thing_n first_o that_o antichrist_n shall_v not_o come_v till_o after_o the_o utter_a desolation_n of_o the_o roman_a empire_n second_o that_o the_o roman_a empire_n do_v yet_o endure_v the_o first_o you_o confirm_v by_o fowr_a scripture_n of_o which_o the_o three_o first_o namely_o dan._n 2._o and_o 7._o apoc._n 17._o do_v rely_v upon_o the_o interpretation_n of_o irenaeus_n book_n 5._o but_o let_v we_o leave_v i_o pray_v you_o man_n name_n and_o let_v we_o weigh_v the_o thing_n itself_o in_o the_o balance_n of_o truth_n if_o the_o matter_n shall_v be_v discuss_v by_o the_o contrary_a opinion_n of_o man_n which_o may_v be_v find_v many_o in_o these_o dark_a place_n there_o will_v be_v no_o end_n let_v we_o deal_v rather_o from_o such_o principle_n as_o may_v lead_v and_o bring_v we_o to_o some_o certainty_n as_o touch_v therefore_o the_o 2._o of_o daniel_n and_o that_o succession_n of_o the_o chief_a kingdom_n until_o the_o world_n end_n which_o the_o image_n show_v nothing_o out_o by_o the_o golden_a head_n the_o sylver_n breast_n the_o brazen_a belly_n the_o leg_n and_o the_o foot_n partly_o iron_n and_o partly_o clay_n the_o 4._o chief_n kingdom_n on_o earth_n of_o the_o assyrian_n persian_n greek_n roman_n the_o last_o whereof_o the_o roman_a you_o say_v be_v a_o long_a time_n part_v in_o two_o as_o the_o leg_n be_v two_o and_o long_a moreover_o that_o of_o the_o two_o leg_n shall_v spring_v ten_o toe_n and_o in_o they_o the_o whole_a image_n have_v a_o end_n to_o weet_v because_o the_o roman_a empire_n shall_v at_o last_o be_v divide_v into_o ten_o king_n of_o who_o none_o shall_v be_v king_n of_o the_o roman_n as_o no_o toe_n be_v a_o leg_n as_o touch_v these_o i_o say_v what_o one_o word_n be_v there_o in_o all_o this_o vision_n which_o intimate_v that_o antichrist_n shall_v come_v after_o the_o roman_a empire_n be_v utter_o deface_v i_o hear_v there_o be_v thou_fw-mi leg_n and_o the_o foot_n divide_v into_o ten_o toe_n but_o not_o a_o whit_n concern_v antichrist_n whither_o he_o shall_v come_v after_o this_o division_n or_o before_o it_o or_o in_o the_o time_n of_o the_o division_n do_v you_o go_v on_o thus_o to_o build_v your_o demonstration_n without_o any_o so_o much_o as_o show_v of_o a_o foundation_n whereon_o they_o shall_v rely_v yea_o what_o if_o the_o contrary_n may_v from_o hence_o most_o firm_o be_v conclude_v that_o antichrist_n shall_v come_v before_o christ_n come_v but_o the_o roman_a empire_n shall_v not_o altogether_o be_v destroy_v until_o christ_n be_v come_v for_o they_o foot_n of_o iron_n and_o clay_n shall_v dure_v until_o the_o stone_n out_o of_o the_o mountain_n cut_n without_o hand_n shall_v smite_v they_o &_o beat_v they_o to_o piece_n as_o be_v plain_o show_v ver_fw-la 34._o thou_o see_v until_o a_o stone_n be_v cut_v out_o which_o be_v not_o in_o any_o hand_n and_o smite_v the_o image_n on_o his_o foot_n of_o iron_n and_o clay_n and_o break_v they_o to_o piece_n and_o again_o in_o the_o 44._o verse_n and_o in_o the_o day_n of_o these_o king_n shall_v the_o god_n of_o heaven_n rise_v up_o a_o kingdom_n which_o shall_v never_o be_v destroy_v etc._n etc._n but_o these_o foot_n be_v the_o roman_a empire_n weak_a in_o deed_n than_o it_o be_v before_o of_o the_o leg_n yet_o be_v it_o the_o roman_a empire_n notwithstanding_o for_o the_o image_n decipher_v fowr_a kingdom_n only_o but_o if_o the_o foot_n shall_v have_v a_o other_o kingdom_n than_o the_o leg_n there_o shall_v be_v five_o whereupon_o also_o that_o be_v false_a which_o you_o say_v that_o the_o roman_a empire_n shall_v at_o last_o be_v divide_v into_o ten_o king_n of_o which_o none_o shall_v be_v king_n of_o the_o roman_n as_o no_o toe_n be_v a_o leg_n for_o thus_o you_o bring_v in_o a_o five_o kingdom_n which_o the_o spirit_n by_o the_o image_n say_v not_o neither_o be_v that_o of_o weight_n that_o a_o toe_n be_v not_o a_o leg_n see_v no_o one_o member_n be_v a_o other_o though_o both_o be_v part_n of_o one_o whole_a thing_n even_o as_o the_o toe_n and_o leg_n be_v of_o the_o four_o kingdom_n now_o therefore_o you_o may_v see_v how_o fayr_o you_o have_v make_v demonstration_n of_o your_o nakedness_n which_o the_o more_o you_o seek_v to_o cover_v and_o hide_v the_o more_o conspicuous_a and_o filthy_a you_o do_v make_v it_o the_o second_o place_n be_v out_o of_o dan._n 7.7_o where_o you_o say_v the_o ten_o horn_n which_o come_v out_o of_o the_o last_o beast_n be_v the_o ten_o last_o king_n which_o shall_v arise_v out_o of_o the_o roman_a empire_n but_o shall_v not_o be_v roman_a emperor_n as_o the_o horn_n arise_v out_o of_o the_o beast_n but_o be_v not_o the_o beast_n itself_o i_o answer_v as_o even_o now_o i_o do_v to_o the_o former_a argument_n which_o be_v the_o self_n same_o that_o this_o if_o these_o ten_o horn_n have_v a_o kingdom_n divers_a from_o that_o of_o the_o beast_n then_o be_v there_o not_o fowr_a king_n only_o but_o five_o contrary_a to_o that_o the_o angel_n affirm_v ver_fw-la 17._o these_o great_a beast_n which_o be_v fowr_n be_v fowr_a king_n which_o shall_v rise_v out_o of_o the_o earth_n moreover_o do_v you_o think_v that_o the_o 4._o horn_n of_o the_o goat_n which_o rise_v up_o in_o place_n of_o that_o break_a horn_n be_v another_o distinct_a kingdom_n from_o the_o kingdom_n of_o the_o goat_n to_o weet_v a_o other_o than_o of_o the_o greek_n dan._n 8.8_o if_o so_o you_o think_v the_o prophet_n show_v you_o be_v plain_o deceive_v who_o teach_v that_o this_o goat_n of_o the_o 8._o chapter_n be_v the_o leopard_n of_o the_o seven_o and_o that_o the_o leopard_n be_v one_o kingdom_n only_o and_o the_o three_o chap._n 7.6.17_o as_o therefore_o the_o goat_n horn_n make_v not_o a_o different_a kingdom_n from_o the_o kingdom_n of_o the_o goat_n so_o neither_o do_v the_o ten_o horn_n of_o the_o four_o beast_n make_v a_o different_a kingdom_n of_o the_o 4_o beast_n there_o be_v also_o the_o ten_o horn_n of_o the_o dragon_n in_o this_o apocalypse_n which_o be_v not_o
a_o 1000_o year_n and_o afterward_o he_o must_v be_v loose_v for_o a_o little_a time_n i_o answer_v now_o in_o deed_n he_o speak_v of_o time_n and_o therefore_o whereas_o before_o it_o be_v 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d season_n while_o he_o lie_v in_o band_n now_o it_o be_v 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d time_n when_o he_o be_v loose_v but_o how_o say_v you_o shall_v this_o be_v true_a if_o antichrist_n shall_v reign_v 1260_o year_n i_o answer_v this_o be_v not_o the_o lose_n of_o antichrist_n but_o of_o the_o devil_n that_o his_o time_n be_v short_a but_o antichrist_n time_n long_o who_o reign_v not_o only_a when_o the_o devil_n be_v loose_v but_o also_o when_o he_o be_v bind_v as_o apoc._n 20.3.4_o where_o the_o devil_n be_v bind_v 1000_o year_n while_o the_o beast_n in_o the_o mean_a time_n be_v despise_v of_o the_o elect_a but_o dominier_v over_o his_o own_o by_o his_o mark_n and_o other_o sign_n of_o servitude_n as_o upon_o that_o place_n shall_v be_v speak_v more_o at_o large_a three_o you_o say_v because_o as_o augustine_n and_o gregory_n do_v reason_n except_o that_o grievous_a persecution_n shall_v be_v very_o short_a many_o shall_v perish_v which_o be_v not_o for_o to_o perish_v whereupon_o our_o lord_n also_o say_v unless_o those_o day_n be_v shorten_v no_o flesh_n shall_v be_v save_v mat._n 24.22_o i_o answer_v this_o of_o matthew_n agree_v not_o to_o the_o persecution_n of_o antichrist_n but_o to_o the_o affliction_n of_o jerusalem_n what_o flight_n shall_v there_o be_v under_o your_o antichrist_n such_o as_o there_o be_v mention_v when_o all_o the_o world_n shall_v plain_o obey_v he_o or_o what_o shall_v the_o sabbath_n hurt_v christian_n that_o flee_v or_o how_o shall_v new_a false_a prophet_n have_v place_n after_o your_o great_a antichrist_n who_o shall_v come_v you_o say_v a_o little_a before_o the_o end_n of_o the_o world_n how_o be_v it_o after_o that_o affliction_n the_o lord_n foretell_v that_o such_o shall_v come_v a_o fresh_a ver_fw-la 24._o therefore_o what_o name_v soever_o you_o pretend_v for_o this_o interpretation_n there_o be_v no_o firmness_n in_o it_o moreover_o if_o i_o shall_v grant_v that_o this_o persecution_n be_v both_o antichrist_n and_o short_a what_o be_v this_o for_o 3._o year_n and_o a_o half_a the_o spirit_n say_v to_o the_o angel_n of_o ephesus_n unless_o thou_o repent_v i_o will_v come_v against_o thou_o short_o apoc._n 2.5_o be_v that_o angel_n punish_v within_o 3._o year_n and_o a_o half_a therefore_o here_o be_v no_o probability_n of_o antichrist_n durance_n but_o this_o your_o demonstration_n be_v like_o your_o other_o this_o also_o i_o will_v tell_v you_o of_o in_o as_o word_n though_o it_o perteyn_n nothing_o to_o the_o force_n of_o the_o argument_n that_o you_o have_v rather_o speak_v amiss_o many_o shall_v perish_v which_o be_v not_o to_o perish_v then_o to_o say_v with_o the_o scripture_n that_o they_o shall_v deceive_v if_o it_o be_v possible_a the_o very_a elect_a for_o that_o which_o the_o lord_n say_v no_o flesh_n shall_v be_v save_v he_o speak_v of_o the_o destruction_n of_o the_o flesh_n with_o greevousnes_n of_o the_o slaughter_n not_o of_o the_o peril_n of_o salvation_n of_o soul_n four_o you_o say_v christ_n preach_v only_o three_o year_n and_o a_o half_a therefore_o it_o be_v meet_v also_o that_o antichrist_n be_v permit_v to_o preach_v no_o long_o i_o answer_v you_o be_v a_o notable_a disputer_n very_o will_v you_o have_v christ_n to_o be_v a_o type_n of_o antichrist_n if_o it_o be_v so_o appoint_v the_o agreement_n of_o year_n will_v perhaps_o be_v meet_v but_o be_v as_o you_o mind_n they_o direct_o cross_v one_o a_o other_o it_o be_v rather_o meet_v all_o thing_n shall_v be_v contrary_a namely_o that_o antichrist_n shall_v reign_v very_o long_o because_o christ_n do_v it_o open_o in_o the_o world_n a_o very_a short_a time_n so_o also_o shall_v christ_n glory_n appear_v the_o great_a in_o subdue_a this_o enemy_n the_o long_a that_o his_o tyranny_n have_v continue_v enemy_n do_v not_o set_v themselves_o to_o imitate_v their_o enemy_n and_o in_o many_o other_o thing_n they_o be_v quite_o contrary_a for_o as_o christ_n be_v very_o poor_a so_o antichrist_n be_v very_o rich_a as_o christ_n be_v a_o subject_n so_o antichrist_n be_v a_o king_n as_o christ_n patient_o suffer_v all_o injury_n so_o antichrist_n studious_o infer_v they_o as_o christ_n have_v not_o where_o to_o lay_v his_o head_n so_o antichrist_n abound_v with_o so_o great_a wealth_n as_o he_o be_v also_o able_a to_o carry_v the_o whore_n will_v you_o require_v a_o similitude_n of_o year_n in_o these_o five_o you_o say_v because_o the_o sum_n of_o 1260_o year_n which_o the_o adversary_n do_v appoint_v can_v no_o way_n be_v apply_v unto_o those_o word_n of_o daniel_n and_o john_n a_o time_n time_n &_o half_o a_o time_n i_o answer_v i_o have_v often_o already_o show_v that_o we_o be_v not_o much_o to_o be_v trouble_v about_o daniel_n but_o what_o let_v i_o pray_v you_o the_o application_n unto_o these_o word_n of_o john_n because_o by_o a_o time_n you_o say_v without_o doubt_n must_v be_v understand_v some_o one_o number_n as_o one_o day_n one_o week_n one_o month_n one_o year_n one_o five-yeres-tide_n one_o jubilee_n one_o hundred-yere_n one_o thousand_o etc._n etc._n i_o answer_v but_o you_o without_o doubt_n be_v egregious_o deceive_v neither_o do_v i_o thing_n that_o you_o write_v these_o thing_n wake_v but_o a_o sleep_n or_o nod_v do_v not_o you_o see_v that_o by_o this_o reason_n you_o reject_v not_o only_o the_o year_n of_o the_o adversary_n but_o even_o the_o day_n and_o month_n which_o the_o angel_n himself_o set_v a_o time_n you_o say_v must_v be_v doubtless_o some_o one_o number_n as_o one_o day_n one_o week_n one_o month_n etc._n etc._n be_v it_o therefore_o one_o day_n than_o time_n shall_v be_v two_o day_n halfa_v a_o time_n half_o a_o day_n now_o have_v we_o the_o sum_n of_o three_o day_n and_o a_o half_a where_o then_o shall_v be_v the_o other_o 1256._o day_n and_o a_o half_a so_o let_v a_o time_n be_v one_o month_n time_n will_v be_v two_o month_n half_o a_o time_n 15._o day_n all_o which_o join_v together_o make_v three_o month_n and_o 15._o day_n will_v the_o 42._o month_n be_v bring_v at_o length_n to_o these_o but_o i_o will_v not_o ask_v too_o loud_o lest_o i_o be_v troublesome_a to_o your_o sleepy_a head_n i_o will_v whisper_v to_o you_o as_o low_o as_o i_o can_v that_o a_o time_n of_o day_n be_v not_o one_o day_n but_o three_o hundred_o and_o sixty_o day_n time_n be_v twice_o as_o many_o namely_o 720_o half_a a_o time_n 180._o likeweise_v also_o a_o time_n of_o year_n be_v 360._o year_n time_n 720._o half_a a_o time_n 180._o so_o a_o time_n of_o month_n be_v 12._o month_n time_n 24._o half_a a_o time_n six_o these_o thing_n when_o you_o be_v awake_a think_v on_o i_o pray_v you_o and_o in_o the_o mean_a time_n dream_v sweet_o those_o 3400._o yeree_n which_o by_o your_o account_n you_o have_v wring_v out_o from_o your_o adversary_n six_o you_o say_v the_o 7._o time_n in_o daniel_n chap._n 9_o be_v seven_o year_n if_o they_o shall_v be_v take_v otherweise_n so_o many_o day_n for_o so_o many_o year_n nabuchodonosor_n have_v live_v without_o his_o kingdom_n two_o thousand_o five_o hundred_o fifty_o and_o five_o year_n therefore_o one_o time_n in_o john_n shall_v be_v one_o usual_a year_n and_o 2._o time_n 2._o year_n and_o so_o forward_o i_o answer_v it_o be_v ridiculous_a to_o tie_v word_n always_o unto_o one_o signification_n except_o where_o certain_a reason_n and_o necessity_n do_v constreyn_a daniel_n himself_o be_v say_v to_o have_v fall_v on_o he_z knee_n three_o time_n in_o a_o day_n i_o think_v you_o will_v not_o have_v it_o that_o he_o fall_v on_o his_o knee_n three_o year_n in_o a_o day_n dan._n 6.11_o and_o thus_o now_o you_o have_v dispute_v of_o antichrist_n three_o year_n reign_n as_o beside_o the_o bare_a name_n of_o some_o man_n which_o be_v not_o meet_v witness_n in_o this_o matter_n you_o have_v nothing_o which_o may_v hold_v either_o you_o or_o any_o other_o papist_n in_o this_o opinion_n yea_o i_o may_v say_v somewhat_o more_o and_o true_o whereof_o you_o and_o all_o papist_n may_v not_o well_o be_v ashamed_a which_o suffer_v yourselves_o to_o be_v deceyve_v in_o so_o great_a a_o matter_n with_o such_o leight_n and_o childish_a toy_n god_n grant_v the_o truth_n be_v not_o now_o also_o show_v you_o in_o vain_a as_o it_o have_v be_v heretofore_o there_o remain_v one_o thing_n in_o this_o chapter_n to_o be_v consider_v which_o you_o answer_v unto_o the_o argument_n of_o illyricus_n where_o you_o say_v that_o in_o the_o scripture_n there_o be_v find_v indeed_o &_o right_o say_v week_n of_o year_n
but_o not_o day_n for_o year_n or_o month_n of_o year_n and_o that_o it_o be_v right_o call_v a_o week_n because_o it_o have_v the_o name_n of_o the_o number_n seven_o but_o month_n and_o day_n be_v name_n of_o number_n but_o of_o the_o course_n of_o the_o man_n or_o time_n of_o light_n i_o answer_v whereas_o first_o you_o say_v that_o day_n be_v not_o find_v for_o year_n it_o be_v manifest_o false_a say_v not_o the_o lord_n to_o the_o israelit_n according_a to_o the_o number_n of_o the_o day_n wherein_o you_o search_v the_o land_n even_o forty_o day_n you_o shall_v bear_v your_o iniquity_n forty_o year_n num._n 14_o 34._o what_o can_v be_v plain_o likeweise_v unto_o ezechiel_n a_o day_n for_o a_o year_n have_v i_o give_v thou_o chap._n 9.6_o but_o say_v you_o he_o will_v not_o say_v for_o day_n literal_o be_v mean_v year_n but_o the_o day_n be_v true_o take_v for_o year_n and_o they_o be_v say_v to_o be_v give_v for_o year_n because_o they_o be_v a_o sign_n of_o year_n o_o wit_n worthy_a of_o sneeze_v wort_n a_o day_n be_v not_o a_o very_a year_n but_o only_o a_o sign_n or_o signification_n of_o a_o year_n as_o if_o any_o ever_o think_v a_o day_n to_o be_v a_o year_n true_o and_o proper_o or_o if_o a_o day_n may_v signify_v a_o year_n in_o ezechiel_n &_o other_o place_n but_o may_v not_o in_o john_n but_o now_o let_v we_o hear_v the_o reason_n why_o a_o week_n may_v be_v of_o year_n and_o not_o a_o day_n likeweise_v forsooth_o because_o a_o week_n signify_v number_n a_o day_n not_o to_o this_o i_o say_v unity_n indeed_o be_v not_o number_n and_o a_o day_n answer_v to_o unity_n and_o this_o very_o subtle_o how_o be_v it_o we_o dullar_n do_v think_v that_o number_n be_v the_o gather_v together_o of_o unity_n &_o that_o unity_n be_v such_o as_o be_v the_o whole_a itself_o which_o be_v make_v of_o they_o therefore_o as_o 7_o day_n signify_v 7_o year_n so_o i_o pray_v you_o with_o your_o good_a leave_v let_v it_o be_v lawful_a for_o one_o day_n to_o signify_v one_o year_n which_o if_o you_o will_v let_v we_o obteyn_fw-mi at_o your_o hand_n in_o thanks_o for_o so_o great_a a_o benefit_n we_o will_v grant_v your_o pope_n a_o long_a last_a reign_n even_o 1260._o year_n chapt._n 9_o against_o the_o sixth_o demonstration_n from_o the_o end_n of_o the_o world_n the_o sixth_o demonstration_n be_v take_v from_o the_o last_o sign_n that_o follow_v antichrist_n which_o shall_v be_v the_o end_n of_o the_o world_n if_o antichrist_n say_v you_o have_v be_v come_v long_o since_o the_o world_n have_v be_v at_o a_o end_n long_o since_o for_o he_o be_v to_o come_v a_o little_a before_o the_o end_n of_o the_o world_n but_o the_o world_n be_v not_o yet_o end_v therefore_o he_o be_v not_o yet_o come_v i_o answer_v if_o that_o of_o antichrist_n three_o year_n reign_n have_v be_v certain_a this_o which_o you_o say_v shall_v have_v some_o weight_n but_o forasmuch_o as_o we_o have_v prove_v that_o to_o be_v a_o vain_a fiction_n partly_o by_o take_v away_o your_o reason_n partly_o by_o propound_v such_o as_o you_o will_v never_o be_v able_a to_o refute_v the_o end_n of_o the_o world_n may_v well_o teach_v antichrist_n end_v but_o be_v of_o no_o force_n at_o all_o to_o demonstrate_v his_o come_n if_o we_o will_v speak_v of_o it_o proper_o from_o the_o place_n by_o you_o cite_v some_o perhaps_o may_v argue_v thus_o the_o end_n of_o the_o world_n be_v conjoin_v with_o the_o end_n of_o antichrist_n but_o the_o end_n of_o the_o world_n be_v not_o yet_o come_v therefore_o neither_o the_o end_n of_o antichrist_n but_o what_o be_v this_o to_o the_o purpose_n we_o make_v question_n of_o his_o come_n not_o of_o his_o end_n you_o may_v have_v spare_v this_o labour_n unless_o perhaps_o you_o think_v these_o be_v to_o be_v prepare_v against_o a_o new_a battle_n when_o antichrist_n case_n shall_v be_v debate_v in_o hell_n there_o this_o domonstration_n may_v have_v some_o weight_n where_o it_o shall_v be_v certain_o know_v whither_o the_o pope_n be_v perish_v together_o with_o the_o destruction_n of_o all_o the_o world_n or_o no._n wherefore_o the_o testimony_n which_o you_o bring_v be_v quite_o from_o the_o purpose_n and_o make_v nothing_o for_o the_o matter_n in_o hand_n yea_o what_o and_o if_o they_o prove_v not_o that_o end_n which_o you_o think_v then_o will_v this_o your_o demonstration_n be_v altogether_o both_o without_o head_n and_o tail_n let_v we_o see_v in_o few_o word_n that_o we_o may_v also_o illustrate_v as_o it_o be_v by_o the_o way_n some_o obscure_a place_n who_o meaning_n it_o will_v be_v very_o profitable_a for_o to_o know_v first_o you_o allege_v that_o of_o dan._n ch_z 7.9_o i_o consider_v the_o horn_n &_o lo_o a_o other_o little_a horn_n come_v up_o &_o three_o of_o the_o first_o horn_n be_v pluck_v away_o from_o before_o he_o i_o behold_v till_o the_o throne_n be_v set_v up_o and_o the_o ancient_a of_o day_n do_v sit_v etc._n etc._n and_o afterward_o explain_v the_o vision_n he_o say_v the_o fou_fw-mi the_o beast_n shall_v be_v the_o four_o kingdom_n and_o the_o ten_o horn_n be_v ten_o king_n &_o a_o other_o shall_v rise_v up_o after_o they_o &_o he_o shall_v be_v mighty_a than_o the_o former_a &_o shall_v subdue_v three_o king_n etc._n etc._n and_o they_o shall_v be_v give_v into_o his_o hand_n for_o a_o time_n &_o time_n &_o half_o a_o time_n &_o judgement_n shall_v sit_v i_o answer_v neither_o be_v the_o little_a horn_n the_o antichrist_n as_o we_o have_v show_v neither_o if_o he_o be_v do_v his_o end_n lead_v unto_o the_o knowledge_n of_o that_o come_n but_o leave_v these_o let_v we_o weigh_v for_o what_o cause_n this_o be_v cite_v from_o these_o word_n you_o will_v teach_v that_o the_o end_n shall_v straightway_o follow_v that_o little_a horn_n but_o you_o ought_v to_o have_v consider_v withal_o the_o word_n after_o in_o ver_fw-la 14._o &_o to_o he_o be_v give_v dominion_n &_o glory_n &_o kingdom_n that_o all_o people_n nation_n &_o tongue_n shall_v serve_v he_o that_o be_v he_o which_o shall_v obteyn_a the_o kingdom_n when_o the_o little_a horn_n be_v destroy_v shall_v be_v a_o universal_a king_n unto_o who_o all_o nation_n shall_v obey_v but_o shall_v there_o remain_v a_o distinction_n of_o people_n nation_n and_o tongue_n after_o the_o last_o end_n yet_o be_v it_o more_o plain_a after_o if_o plain_a may_v be_v in_o verse_n 27._o and_o the_o kingdom_n and_o amplitude_n and_o rule_v of_o kingdom_n shall_v be_v give_v to_o the_o people_n of_o the_o holy_a most_o high_a who_o kingdom_n shall_v be_v a_o perpetual_a kingdom_n and_o all_o ruler_n shall_v serve_v it_o where_o first_o it_o be_v to_o be_v observe_v that_o the_o dominion_n of_o this_o kingdom_n shall_v be_v of_o the_o thing_n under_o heaven_n then_o that_o it_o shall_v be_v the_o holy_a most-high_a and_o final_o that_o all_o ruler_n shall_v serve_v this_o kingdom_n which_o thing_n can_v have_v place_n in_o the_o heavenly_a kingdom_n the_o thing_n ●s_v thus_o that_o little_a horn_n be_v the_o turk_n who_o be_v at_o last_o extinguish_v the_o jew_n convert_v universallie_o all_o of_o they_o unto_o the_o faith_n shall_v have_v a_o perpetual_a domination_n that_o shall_v dure_v until_o the_o come_n of_o our_o lord_n from_o heaven_n for_o the_o little_a horn_n in_o daniel_n be_v gog_n in_o ezechiel_n who_o be_v slay_v the_o christian_a faith_n shall_v exceed_o flourish_v among_o the_o jew_n as_o be_v show_v by_o that_o typical_a build_n of_o the_o temple_n &_o new_a city_n the_o same_o reason_n be_v of_o the_o new_a jerusalem_n in_o this_o apocalypse_n after_o gog_n be_v slay_v ch_n 20.21_o these_o thing_n we_o have_v partly_o take_v out_o of_o the_o 16._o chap._n of_o the_o apocalypse_n partly_o they_o shall_v be_v explayn_v hereafter_o more_o full_o and_o this_o be_v that_o which_o lactantius_n write_v lib._n 7._o chap._n 15._o the_o name_n of_o rome_n say_v he_o wherewith_o the_o world_n now_o be_v rule_v my_o hart_n be_v afraid_a to_o speak_v it_o but_o speak_v it_o i_o will_v because_o it_o shall_v come_v to_o pass_v shall_v be_v take_v away_o from_o the_o earth_n and_o the_o empire_n shall_v return_v into_o asia_n &_o the_o east_n again_o shall_v have_v dominion_n and_o the_o west_n shall_v serve_v the_o second_o place_n be_v ap._n 20.4_o after_o this_o he_o must_v be_v loose_v a_o little_a time_n and_o i_o see_v seat_n and_o they_o sit_v upon_o they_o and_o judgement_n be_v give_v unto_o they_o i_o answer_v these_o thing_n be_v far_o from_o the_o last_o end_n for_o they_o follow_v not_o as_o you_o think_v after_o the_o devil_n be_v loose_v but_o these_o seat_n be_v place_v during_o his_o imprisonment_n again_o there_o be_v 1000_o
jovinian_a for_o rome_n have_v not_o wipe_v away_o her_o blasphemy_n but_o imprint_v it_o deep_o after_o she_o become_v christian_a see_v now_o she_o shall_v bear_v the_o punisment_n of_o her_o fornication_n your_o sesond_a answer_n therefore_o be_v no_o less_o infirm_a than_o the_o first_o let_v we_o see_v the_o three_o and_o this_o say_v although_o that_o woman_n be_v christian_a rome_n yet_o our_o argument_n shall_v have_v no_o force_n at_o all_o because_o antichrist_n shall_v hate_v rome_n &_o fight_v with_o she_o and_o make_v her_o desolate_a &_o burn_v she_o therefore_o rome_n be_v not_o antichrist_n seat_n i_o answer_v that_o which_o you_o speak_v of_o antichrist_n hatred_n &_o fight_v against_o rome_n be_v plain_o false_a you_o borrow_v this_o from_o ap._n 17.16_o where_o you_o read_v thus_o and_o the_o ten_o horn_n which_o thou_o see_v &_o the_o beast_n these_o shall_v hate_v the_o whore_n etc._n etc._n which_o read_v we_o have_v prove_v in_o handle_v that_o place_n to_o be_v faulty_a the_o true_a read_n be_v &_o the_o ten_o horn_n which_o thou_o see_v on_o the_o beast_n these_o shall_v hate_v etc._n etc._n the_o difference_n be_v that_o the_o true_a read_n teach_v that_o only_o the_o horn_n of_o the_o beast_n shall_v hate_v the_o whore_n the_o false_a will_v have_v it_o that_o both_o the_o horn_n &_o the_o beast_n that_o be_v both_o the_o king_n &_o antichr_n shall_v hate_v the_o whore_n aretas_n read_v so_o as_o i_o say_v the_o vulg._n latin_a to_o which_o you_o be_v bind_v by_o the_o decree_n of_o trent_n have_v it_o also_o many_o other_o copy_n have_v it_o so_o to_o which_o the_o rest_n of_o the_o apocalypse_n give_v approbation_n most_o adverse_a to_o that_o which_o you_o bring_v whetfore_o unless_o you_o can_v find_v a_o better_a answer_n you_o must_v needs_o confess_v that_o christian_a rome_n be_v the_o seat_n of_o antichrist_n unto_o the_o second_o place_n which_o our_o man_n bring_v from_o 2_o thes_n 2.4_o that_o antichrist_n shall_v sit_v in_o the_o temple_n of_o god_n you_o answer_v that_o paul_n speak_v of_o solomon_n temple_n and_o you_o refer_v we_o to_o the_o thing_n that_o you_o say_v before_o and_o so_o do_v i_o the_o the_o reader_n to_o the_o refutation_n of_o they_o then_o unto_o that_o reason_n that_o the_o jew_n temple_n be_v in_o deed_n god_n but_o it_o be_v now_o cease_v when_o the_o jewish_a sacrifice_n and_o preisthood_n cease_v you_o answer_v that_o it_o cease_v not_o by_o and_o by_o to_o be_v god_n temple_n for_o the_o same_o temple_n may_v have_v be_v the_o temple_n of_o christian_n and_o so_o in_o deed_n be_v while_o it_o remain_v for_o the_o apostle_n preach_v and_o pray_v in_o it_o luk_n 24.53_o act._n 3.1_o and_o 5.20_o i_o answer_v and_o ask_v what_o all_o these_o thing_n do_v make_v to_o confirm_v the_o sit_v of_o your_o antichrist_n in_o solomon_n temple_n because_o the_o temple_n of_o jerusalem_n wherein_o the_o apostle_n preach_v and_o pray_v be_v while_o it_o continue_v the_o temple_n of_o god_n shall_v therefore_o the_o temple_n of_o god_n wherein_o antichrist_n shall_v sit_v be_v the_o temple_n of_o jerusalem_n sure_o i_o can_v show_v you_o how_o after_o the_o old_a ordinance_n of_o religion_n be_v abrogate_a a_o titular_a sanctity_n at_o least_o may_v remain_v for_o a_o time_n in_o that_o temple_n of_o solomons_n even_o as_o a_o boat_n do_v not_o by_o and_o by_o cease_v to_o move_v after_o the_o oar_n be_v stay_v if_o it_o be_v not_o vain_a to_o spend_v labour_n in_o a_o thing_n of_o no_o consequence_n for_o you_o may_v with_o as_o much_o certainty_n conclude_v that_o the_o temple_n of_o god_n wherein_o antichrist_n shall_v sit_v be_v jerusalems_n temple_n because_o with_o a_o little_a change_n of_o the_o poet_n word_n you_o friend_n admit_v auditor_n can_v you_o forbear_v to_o laugh_v as_o from_o the_o antecedent_n which_o you_o have_v set_v down_o unto_o that_o of_o daniel_n chap._n 9_o and_o the_o desolation_n shall_v continue_v until_o the_o consummation_n and_o end_n whereby_o our_o man_n prove_v that_o the_o temple_n shall_v not_o be_v build_v again_o you_o answer_v it_o be_v not_o in_o deed_n to_o be_v build_v again_o but_o in_o the_o end_n of_o the_o world_n or_o though_o it_o shall_v be_v build_v again_o yet_o will_v it_o never_o be_v but_o profane_a or_o final_o that_o it_o shall_v not_o be_v build_v again_o perfect_o but_o only_o begin_v and_o in_o it_o be_v begin_v antichrist_n shall_v sit_v i_o answer_v we_o have_v need_n of_o some_o geryon_n that_o with_o his_o hundred_o hand_n may_v take_v this_o slippery_a eel_n how_o do_v you_o wreath_n yourself_o into_o manifold_a bought_n &_o circle_n yet_o though_o you_o shall_v change_v yourself_o into_o a_o 1000_o sap_v you_o shall_v not_o slip_v away_o who_o teach_v you_o i_o pray_v so_o to_o distinguish_v against_o daniel_n it_o be_v not_o to_o be_v build_v again_o say_v in_o the_o end_n of_o the_o world_n or_o be_v build_v again_o it_o shall_v abide_v profane_a or_o it_o shall_v be_v build_v again_o not_o perfect_o but_o begin_v do_v you_o fetch_v these_o thing_n out_o of_o the_o pope_n chapel_n sure_o the_o truth_n inspire_v of_o god_n afford_v not_o this_o unto_o you_o for_o that_o teach_v that_o wrath_n be_v come_v upon_o the_o jew_n even_o to_o the_o utmost_a 1_o thes_n 2.16_o &_o that_o it_o be_v in_o part_n of_o this_o wrath_n that_o god_n have_v bow_v down_o their_o back_n always_o rom._n 11.10_o therefore_o the_o jew_n shall_v never_o so_o lift_v up_o themselves_o under_o antichrist_n as_o to_o have_v the_o least_o power_n to_o entreprise_v any_o such_o thing_n but_o shall_v always_o remain_v desolate_a and_o oppress_v until_o they_o shall_v say_v bless_a be_v he_o that_o come_v in_o the_o name_n of_o the_o lord_n that_o be_v until_o christ_n shall_v come_v and_o not_o antichrist_n mat._n 23.39_o four_o whereas_o our_o man_n bring_v forth_o some_o place_n out_o of_o the_o father_n affirm_v that_o antichrist_n shall_v sit_v in_o the_o church_n of_o christian_n you_o grant_v it_o be_v true_a and_o not_o against_o you_o because_o the_o father_n will_v not_o say_v that_o antichrist_n shall_v sit_v in_o the_o church_n as_o a_o bishop_n but_o as_o a_o god_n i_o answer_v your_o pope_n shall_v not_o escape_v away_o by_o this_o ridiculous_a distinction_n the_o same_o man_n may_v sit_v in_o the_o church_n both_o as_o a_o bishop_n and_o as_o a_o god_n antichrist_n shall_v sustain_v the_o person_n of_o both_o as_o we_o see_v in_o your_o pope_n in_o word_n he_o will_v humble_o feyn_v himself_o a_o bishop_n but_o he_o will_v arrogate_v the_o authority_n of_o god_n in_o deed_n he_o will_v forgive_v synn_n by_o some_o more_o superior_a power_n than_o a_o minister_n can_v he_o will_v let_v out_o of_o purgatory_n he_o will_v put_v into_o the_o calendar_n of_o saint_n who_o he_o will_v at_o his_o pleasure_n he_o will_v command_v new_a article_n of_o faith_n and_o many_o such_o like_a thing_n will_v he_o do_v that_o appertein_a not_o to_o this_o mortal_a condition_n but_o to_o the_o high_a majesty_n why_o shall_v the_o father_n speak_v of_o his_o bishop_n office_n in_o this_o so_o great_a a_o loftiness_n when_o great_a thing_n be_v mention_v the_o small_a matter_n be_v wont_a to_o be_v hide_v with_o the_o exceed_a greatness_n of_o the_o more_o excellent_a by_o their_o silence_n they_o deny_v not_o that_o he_o shall_v sit_v in_o the_o church_n as_o a_o bishop_n but_o when_o the_o high_a pinnacle_n of_o pride_n be_v to_o be_v speak_v of_o they_o think_v they_o be_v not_o to_o insist_v in_o the_o low_a step_n unto_o our_o man_n five_o argument_n take_v from_o the_o word_n of_o gregory_n lib._n 4._o epist_n 38._o the_o king_n of_o pride_n be_v nigh_o and_o though_o it_o be_v heighnous_a to_o be_v speak_v a_o army_n of_o priest_n be_v prepare_v for_o he_o you_o say_v from_o hence_o the_o contrary_n be_v gather_v to_o that_o which_o we_o collect_v for_o it_o follow_v not_o that_o antichrist_n shall_v be_v a_o universal_a bishop_n but_o the_o contrary_a because_o the_o forerunner_n be_v not_o all_o one_o with_o he_o who_o he_o run_v before_o i_o answer_v neither_o be_v a_o universal_a bishop_n alone_o with_o he_o that_o will_v be_v universal_a the_o bishop_n of_o constantinople_n will_v have_v be_v but_o he_o obtain_v not_o his_o desire_n the_o bishop_n of_o rome_n ask_v it_o of_o phocas_n and_o get_v it_o the_o contrary_a therefore_o be_v not_o gather_v from_o hence_o as_o you_o say_v but_o it_o be_v right_o collect_v that_o antichrist_n shall_v be_v a_o universal_a bishop_n which_o dignity_n none_o beside_o antichrist_n can_v obteyn_a and_o to_o the_o army_n of_o priest_n you_o answer_v that_o gregory_n will_v not_o say_v that_o the_o priest_n as_o priest_n perteyn_v unto_o antichrist_n name_n
use_v shall_v be_v free_a and_o absolve_v from_o the_o accusation_n although_o find_v to_o be_v such_o a_o one_o but_o the_o accus●r_n shall_v be_v make_v subject_n to_o punishment_n as_o it_o appear_v by_o the_o decree_n of_o the_o same_o antonin_n in_o justin_n and_o euseb_n book_n 4.13_o now_o sure_o the_o truth_n triumph_v wear_v a_o crown_n and_o the_o emperor_n do_v lie_v down_o b●ing_v strike_v by_o the_o bow_n who_o seem_v to_o be_v far_o beyond_o the_o lot_n of_o private_a man_n yea_o in_o the_o most_o remote_a countryer_n one_o apology_n be_v throw_v the_o enemy_n be_v so_o restrain_v that_o they_o can_v attemp_n nothing_o against_o the_o truth_n the_o same_o justine_n also_o by_o his_o most_o learned_a write_n stop_v the_o mouth_n of_o the_o jew_n and_o grecian_n so_o as_o the_o victory_n of_o the_o truth_n be_v famous_a euseb_n book_n 4.18_o therefore_o this_o time_n next_o after_o john_n excellent_a for_o apology_n &_o joyful_a fruit_n of_o the_o persecution_n stay_v be_v the_o voice_n of_o the_o lion_n the_o first_o beast_n and_o that_o only_a pleasant_a solemnity_n which_o the_o truth_n do_v keep_v be_v sit_v on_o the_o white_a horse_n with_o the_o bow_n and_o crown_n 3_o and_o when_o he_o have_v open_v the_o second_o seal_n so_o be_v the_o first_o seal_n the_o second_o as_o touch_v the_o lamb_n that_o open_v it_o there_o be_v nothing_o new_a but_o the_o beast_n be_v a_o other_o namely_o a_o ox_n who_o place_n be_v the_o second_o in_o chap._n 4_o 7._o and_o we_o know_v that_o this_o beast_n be_v bear_v to_o labour_n not_o to_o be_v compare_v with_o the_o lion_n in_o the_o glory_n of_o overcome_v yet_o far_o more_o noble_a in_o the_o praise_n of_o endure_a sorrow_n neither_o be_v the_o voice_n here_o so_o terrible_a and_o roar_a as_o be_v that_o of_o the_o thunder_a lion_n but_o vulgar_a and_o common_a whence_o he_o say_v that_o he_o hear_v the_o second_o beast_n say_v which_o yet_o shall_v have_v his_o force_n to_o stir_v up_o man_n to_o hearken_v to_o the_o event_n 4_o and_o another_o horse_n come_v forth_o that_o be_v read_v the_o second_o type_n be_v a_o read_v horse_n &_o the_o sitter_n upon_o he_o to_o who_o be_v give_v a_o great_a sword_n of_o the_o horse_n we_o speak_v at_o the_o second_o verse_n that_o fiery_a colour_n signifi_v war_n contention_n slaughter_n blood_n as_o in_o isaiah_n who_o be_v this_o that_o come_v from_o edome_n with_o stieped_a garment_n from_o bozrah_n wherefore_o be_v thou_o red_a in_o thy_o garment_n and_o thy_o apparel_n as_o of_o he_o that_o tread_v in_o the_o wine_n press_v chap._n 63.1_o the_o sitter_n on_o he_o be_v furnish_v with_o power_n because_o he_o shall_v order_v the_o matter_n not_o at_o his_o own_o pleasure_n but_o by_o a_o other_o commandment_n power_n be_v give_v partly_o by_o word_n partly_o by_o sign_n by_o word_n leave_v be_v grant_v to_o take_v peace_n from_o the_o earth_n for_o so_o the_o verb_n 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d to_o take_v be_v take_v for_o 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d to_o take_v away_o as_o we_o have_v observe_v before_o in_o chap._n 3.11_o but_o the_o earth_n in_o oppose_a to_o heaven_n and_o see_v heaven_n in_o this_o book_n do_v note_n out_o the_o true_a and_o holy_a church_n as_o after_o it_o shall_v be_v manifest_a the_o earth_n contrariwise_o signifi_v the_o ungodly_a world_n from_o which_o peace_n be_v take_v and_o not_o from_o the_o church_n which_o be_v yet_o more_o plain_a from_o the_o declaration_n of_o the_o power_n which_o proceed_v so_o far_o that_o it_o shall_v set_v man_n together_o by_o the_o ear_n to_o kill_v one_o a_o other_o as_o these_o word_n show_v that_o one_o shall_v kill_v another_o but_o the_o church_n avenge_v not_o herself_o by_o slaughter_n of_o the_o enemy_n much_o less_o by_o a_o certain_a fury_n in_o murder_v she_o own_o friend_n but_o this_o butchery_n one_o of_o a_o other_o grow_v from_o the_o strife_n and_o battle_n among_o the_o gentile_n whereby_o one_o shall_v run_v headlong_o to_o a_o other_o destruction_n wherefore_o it_o be_v not_o here_o speak_v of_o the_o persecution_n of_o the_o church_n but_o of_o the_o tempest_n of_o war_n wherewith_o the_o whole_a world_n shall_v be_v shake_v which_o be_v declare_v to_o be_v very_o great_a by_o the_o sign_n and_o instrument_n of_o the_o power_n that_o be_v a_o great_a sword_n give_v to_o the_o sitter_n on_o the_o horse_n which_o thing_n come_v to_o pass_v after_o that_o antoninus_n pius_n be_v dead_a for_o his_o son_n marcus_n aurelius_n antoninus_n verus_n by_o name_n a_o philosopher_n by_o deed_n a_o great_a enemy_n of_o the_o truth_n be_v blind_v with_o the_o heathen_n superstition_n move_v a_o merciless_a persecution_n against_o christian_n which_o that_o the_o second_o beast_n may_v restrain_v he_o utter_v a_o voice_n for_o justin_n send_v a_o second_o apology_n to_o the_o emperor_n euseb_n book_n 4.16_o of_o the_o eccl._n hist_n melito_n bishop_n of_o sardi_n &_o apolinarius_n bishop_n of_o hierapolis_n do_v the_o same_o plead_v earnest_o the_o cause_n of_o the_o christian_n in_o book_n write_v to_o the_o same_o emperor_n euseb_n hist_o book_n 4.26_o but_o the_o emperor_n more_o learned_a than_o his_o father_n less_o godly_a receive_v the_o defence_n with_o deaf_a ear_n from_o hence_o the_o voice_n of_o this_o beast_n become_v the_o voice_n of_o a_o ox_n as_o which_o prevail_v not_o as_o before_o the_o voice_n of_o the_o lion_n do_v prevail_v but_o the_o beast_n nevertheless_o after_o his_o low_v do_v bear_v a_o grievous_a yoke_n of_o the_o former_a calamity_n justin_n himself_o before_o in_o strength_n a_o lion_n now_o in_o patience_n a_o ox_n kill_v for_o christ_n his_o sake_n obtain_v the_o name_n of_o martyr_n euseb_n hist_o book_n 4._o 16._o the_o residue_n do_v mourn_v under_o the_o cross_n without_o any_o rest_n give_v they_o notwithstanding_o howsoever_o the_o voice_n prevail_v not_o to_o appease_v the_o cruelty_n yet_o it_o be_v instead_o of_o a_o alarm_n to_o warn_v the_o faithful_a how_o great_a evil_n be_v like_a to_o come_v short_o upon_o the_o world_n for_o their_o cruel_a harden_v against_o the_o truth_n peace_n shall_v be_v take_v away_o straiteway_o from_o man_n see_v it_o shall_v be_v most_o just_a that_o they_o which_o will_v refuse_v eternal_a peace_n shall_v not_o also_o enjoy_v this_o earthly_a and_o they_o which_o so_o greedy_o thirst_v after_o innocent_a blood_n shall_v be_v satiate_v at_o length_n with_o their_o own_o blood_n therefore_o by_o and_o by_o all_o thing_n be_v on_o fire_n w●●_n war_n the_o parthian_n now_o first_o of_o al●_n af●●_n tr●ian●_n fall_v away_o f●●●_n he_o roman_n thither_o the_o brother_n of_o the_o emperor_n go_v be_v in_o ad●●●_n as_o a_o ●●●forte_n to_o the_o empire_n and_o at_o length_n a_o very_a great_a discomfiture_n 〈…〉_o he_o return_v home_o with_o triumph_n to_o who_o this_o felicity_n be_v bu●_n 〈…〉_o be_v sudden_o dead_a of_o a_o apoplexy_n wh●le_v he_o sit_v with_o his_o brother_n in_o the_o chariot_n eutrop._n brev._n book_n 8._o short_o after_o arise_v the_o war_n of_o the_o people_n of_o bohemia_n so_o great_a as_o there_o have_v not_o be_v the_o like_a in_o any_o time_n as_o the_o s●●e_z eurropius_n say_v worthy_o to_o be_v compare_v with_o the_o war_n of_o ca●th●g●_n which_o together_o with_o the_o bohemian_o the_o q●●d●●_n vand●●s_n the_o sardine_n and_o su●ves_n and_o all_o barbary_n from_o the_o c●●●●e_n of_o pa●●onia_n even_o to_o the_o mid_n of_o the_o gaulles_n ho●●e_o miserable_a be_v then_o the_o face_n of_o thing_n the_o same_o author_n describe_v excellent_o after_o thi●_n manner_n for_o say_v he_o there_o be_v not_o rest_v any_o where_n from_o war_n and_o through_o all_o the_o east_n illyr●●um_n italy_n france_n battle_n be_v hot_o apply_v these_o be_v earthquake_n not_o without_o the_o destruction_n of_o city_n inundation_n of_o river_n often_o pestilence_n kind_n of_o locust_n hurtful_a to_o the_o field_n so_o as_o nothing_o at_o all_o almost_o whereby_o mo●●●ll_a man_n be_v wont_a to_o be_v waste_v with_o very_o great_a sorrow_n can_v be_v speak_v or_o think_v which_o rage_v not_o when_o antoninus_n be_v emperor_n those_o be_v his_o word_n it_o be_v a_o great_a and_o cruel_a sword_n which_o be_v moist_a &_o drunken_a with_o so_o much_o blood_n if_o any_o do_v think_v that_o war_n be_v no_o strange_a thing_n to_o the_o roman_n neither_o to_o be_v like_a to_o be_v true_a that_o a_o thing_n so_o common_a and_o ●●uall_a shall_v here_o be_v signify_v let_v he_o compare_v the_o empire_n of_o this_o antoninus_n with_o they_o which_o go_v before_o he_o shall_v see_v that_o the_o war_n have_v ●●●●ed_v by_o the_o providence_n of_o god_n for_o a_o long_a space_n to_o the_o end_n that_o this_o judgement_n of_o god_n when_o it_o